NICOMACHEAN ETHICS
by Aristotle
translated by W. D. Ross
BOOK I
EVERY art and every inquiry, and similarly
every action and pursuit, is thought to aim at some good; and for this reason the
good has rightly been declared to be that at which all things aim. But a
certain difference is found among ends; some are activities, others are
products apart from the activities that produce them. Where there are ends
apart from the actions, it is the nature of the products to be better than the
activities. Now, as there are many actions, arts, and sciences, their ends also
are many; the end of the medical art is health, that of shipbuilding a vessel,
that of strategy victory, that of economics wealth. But where such arts fall
under a single capacity- as bridle-making and the other arts concerned with the
equipment of horses fall under the art of riding, and this and every military
action under strategy, in the same way other arts fall under yet others- in all
of these the ends of the master arts are to be preferred to all the subordinate
ends; for it is for the sake of the former that the latter are pursued. It
makes no difference whether the activities themselves are the ends of the
actions, or something else apart from the activities, as in the case of the
sciences just mentioned.
2
If, then, there is some end of the things we do, which we desire for its own sake (everything else being desired for the sake of this), and if we do not choose everything for the sake of something else (for at that rate the process would go on to infinity, so that our desire would be empty and vain), clearly this must be the good and the chief good. Will not the knowledge of it, then, have a great influence on life? Shall we not, like archers who have a mark to aim at, be more likely to hit upon what is right? If so, we must try, in outline at least, to determine what it is, and of which of the sciences or capacities it is the object. It would seem to belong to the most authoritative art and that which is most truly the master art. And politics appears to be of this nature; for it is this that ordains which of the sciences should be studied in a state, and which each class of citizens should learn and up to what point they should learn them; and we see even the most highly esteemed of capacities to fall under this, e.g. strategy, economics, rhetoric; now, since politics uses the rest of the sciences, and since, again, it legislates as to what we are to do and what we are to abstain from, the end of this science must include those of the others, so that this end must be the good for man. For even if the end is the same for a single man and for a state, that of the state seems at all events something greater and more complete whether to attain or to preserve; though it is worth while to attain the end merely for one man, it is finer and more godlike to attain it for a nation or for city-states. These, then, are the ends at which our inquiry aims, since it is political science, in one sense of that term.
3
Our discussion
will be adequate if it has as much clearness as the subject-matter admits of,
for precision is not to be sought for alike in all discussions, any more than
in all the products of the crafts. Now fine and just actions, which political
science investigates, admit of much variety and fluctuation of opinion, so that
they may be thought to exist only by convention, and not by nature. And goods
also give rise to a similar fluctuation because they bring harm to many people;
for before now men have been undone by reason of their wealth, and others by
reason of their courage. We must be content, then, in speaking of such subjects
and with such premisses to indicate the truth roughly and in outline, and in
speaking about things which are only for the most part true and with premisses
of the same kind to reach conclusions that are no better. In the same spirit,
therefore, should each type of statement be received; for it is the mark of an
educated man to look for precision in each class of things just so far as the
nature of the subject admits; it is evidently equally foolish to accept
probable reasoning from a mathematician and to demand from a rhetorician
scientific proofs. Now each man judges
well the things he knows, and of these he is a good judge. And so the man who
has been educated in a subject is a good judge of that subject, and the man who
has received an all-round education is a good judge in general. Hence a young
man is not a proper hearer of lectures on political science; for he is
inexperienced in the actions that occur in life, but its discussions start from
these and are about these; and, further, since he tends to follow his passions,
his study will be vain and unprofitable, because the end aimed at is not
knowledge but action. And it makes no difference whether he is young in years
or youthful in character; the defect does not depend on time, but on his
living, and pursuing each successive object, as passion directs. For to such
persons, as to the incontinent, knowledge brings no profit; but to those who
desire and act in accordance with a rational principle knowledge about such
matters will be of great benefit. These
remarks about the student, the sort of treatment to be expected, and the
purpose of the inquiry, may be taken as our preface.
4
Let us resume our inquiry and state, in view
of the fact that all knowledge and every pursuit aims at some good, what it is
that we say political science aims at and what is the highest of all goods
achievable by action. Verbally there is very general agreement; for both the
general run of men and people of superior refinement say that it is happiness,
and identify living well and doing well with being happy; but with regard to
what happiness is they differ, and the many do not give the same account as the
wise. For the former think it is some plain and obvious thing, like pleasure,
wealth, or honour; they differ, however, from one another- and often even the
same man identifies it with different things, with health when he is ill, with
wealth when he is poor; but, conscious of their ignorance, they admire those
who proclaim some great ideal that is above their comprehension. Now some
thought that apart from these many goods there is another which is self-subsistent
and causes the goodness of all these as well. To examine all the opinions that
have been held were perhaps somewhat fruitless; enough to examine those that
are most prevalent or that seem to be arguable. Let us not fail to notice, however, that there is a difference
between arguments from and those to the first principles. For Plato, too, was
right in raising this question and asking, as he used to do, 'are we on the way
from or to the first principles?' There is a difference, as there is in a
race-course between the course from the judges to the turning-point and the way
back. For, while we must begin with what is known, things are objects of
knowledge in two senses - some to us, some without qualification. Presumably,
then, we must begin with things known to us. Hence any one who is to listen
intelligently to lectures about what is noble and just, and generally, about
the subjects of political science must have been brought up in good habits. For
the fact is the starting-point, and if this is sufficiently plain to him, he
will not at the start need the reason as well; and the man who has been well
brought up has or can easily get starting points. And as for him who neither
has nor can get them, let him hear the words of Hesiod:
Far best is he who knows all things himself;
good, he that hearkens when men counsel right;
But he who neither knows, nor lays to heart Another's wisdom, is a useless weight.
5
Let us, however, resume our discussion from
the point at which we digressed. To judge from the lives that men lead, most
men, and men of the most vulgar type, seem (not without some ground) to
identify the good, or happiness, with pleasure; which is the reason why they
love the life of enjoyment. For there are, we may say, three prominent types of
life- that just mentioned, the political, and thirdly the contemplative life.
Now the mass of mankind are evidently quite slavish in their tastes, preferring
a life suitable to beasts, but they get some ground for their view from the
fact that many of those in high places share the tastes of Sardanapallus. A
consideration of the prominent types of life shows that people of superior
refinement and of active disposition identify happiness with honour; for this
is, roughly speaking, the end of the political life. But it seems too
superficial to be what we are looking for, since it is thought to depend on
those who bestow honour rather than on him who receives it, but the good we
divine to be something proper to a man and not easily taken from him. Further,
men seem to pursue honour in order that they may be assured of their goodness;
at least it is by men of practical wisdom that they seek to be honoured, and
among those who know them, and on the ground of their virtue; clearly, then,
according to them, at any rate, virtue is better. And perhaps one might even
suppose this to be, rather than honour, the end of the political life. But even
this appears somewhat incomplete; for possession of virtue seems actually
compatible with being asleep, or with lifelong inactivity, and, further, with
the greatest sufferings and misfortunes; but a man who was living so no one
would call happy, unless he were maintaining a thesis at all costs. But enough
of this; for the subject has been sufficiently treated even in the current discussions.
Third comes the contemplative life, which we shall consider later. The life of money-making is one undertaken
under compulsion, and wealth is evidently not the good we are seeking; for it
is merely useful and for the sake of something else. And so one might rather
take the aforenamed objects to be ends; for they are loved for themselves. But
it is evident that not even these are ends; yet many arguments have been thrown
away in support of them. Let us leave this subject, then.
6
We had perhaps better consider the universal
good and discuss thoroughly what is meant by it, although such an inquiry is
made an uphill one by the fact that the Forms have been introduced by friends
of our own. Yet it would perhaps be thought to be better, indeed to be our
duty, for the sake of maintaining the truth even to destroy what touches us
closely, especially as we are philosophers or lovers of wisdom; for, while both
are dear, piety requires us to honour truth above our friends. The men who introduced this doctrine did not
posit Ideas of classes within which they recognized priority and posteriority
(which is the reason why they did not maintain the existence of an Idea
embracing all numbers); but the term 'good' is used both in the category of
substance and in that of quality and in that of relation, and that which is per
se, i.e. substance, is prior in nature to the relative (for the latter is like
an off shoot and accident of being); so that there could not be a common Idea
set over all these goods. Further, since 'good' has as many senses as 'being'
(for it is predicated both in the category of substance, as of God and of
reason, and in quality, i.e. of the virtues, and in quantity, i.e. of that
which is moderate, and in relation, i.e. of the useful, and in time, i.e. of
the right opportunity, and in place, i.e. of the right locality and the like),
clearly it cannot be something universally present in all cases and single; for
then it could not have been predicated in all the categories but in one only. Further,
since of the things answering to one Idea there is one science, there would
have been one science of all the goods; but as it is there are many sciences
even of the things that fall under one category, e.g. of opportunity, for
opportunity in war is studied by strategics and in disease by medicine, and the
moderate in food is studied by medicine and in exercise by the science of
gymnastics. And one might ask the question, what in the world they mean by 'a
thing itself', is (as is the case) in 'man himself' and in a particular man the
account of man is one and the same. For in so far as they are man, they will in
no respect differ; and if this is so, neither will 'good itself' and particular
goods, in so far as they are good. But again it will not be good any the more
for being eternal, since that which lasts long is no whiter than that which
perishes in a day. The Pythagoreans seem to give a more plausible account of
the good, when they place the one in the column of goods; and it is they that
Speusippus seems to have followed. But
let us discuss these matters elsewhere; an objection to what we have said,
however, may be discerned in the fact that the Platonists have not been
speaking about all goods, and that the goods that are pursued and loved for themselves
are called good by reference to a single Form, while those which tend to
produce or to preserve these somehow or to prevent their contraries are called
so by reference to these, and in a secondary sense. Clearly, then, goods must
be spoken of in two ways, and some must be good in themselves, the others by
reason of these. Let us separate, then, things good in themselves from things
useful, and consider whether the former are called good by reference to a
single Idea. What sort of goods would one call good in themselves? Is it those
that are pursued even when isolated from others, such as intelligence, sight,
and certain pleasures and honours? Certainly, if we pursue these also for the
sake of something else, yet one would place them among things good in
themselves. Or is nothing other than the Idea of good good in itself? In that
case the Form will be empty. But if the things we have named are also things
good in themselves, the account of the good will have to appear as something
identical in them all, as that of whiteness is identical in snow and in white
lead. But of honour, wisdom, and pleasure, just in respect of their goodness,
the accounts are distinct and diverse. The good, therefore, is not some common
element answering to one Idea. But what
then do we mean by the good? It is surely not like the things that only chance
to have the same name. Are goods one, then, by being derived from one good or
by all contributing to one good, or are they rather one by analogy? Certainly
as sight is in the body, so is reason in the soul, and so on in other cases.
But perhaps these subjects had better be dismissed for the present; for perfect
precision about them would be more appropriate to another branch of philosophy.
And similarly with regard to the Idea; even if there is some one good which is
universally predicable of goods or is capable of separate and independent
existence, clearly it could not be achieved or attained by man; but we are now
seeking something attainable. Perhaps, however, some one might think it worth
while to recognize this with a view to the goods that are attainable and
achievable; for having this as a sort of pattern we shall know better the goods
that are good for us, and if we know them shall attain them. This argument has
some plausibility, but seems to clash with the procedure of the sciences; for
all of these, though they aim at some good and seek to supply the deficiency of
it, leave on one side the knowledge of the good. Yet that all the exponents of
the arts should be ignorant of, and should not even seek, so great an aid is
not probable. It is hard, too, to see how a weaver or a carpenter will be
benefited in regard to his own craft by knowing this 'good itself', or how the
man who has viewed the Idea itself will be a better doctor or general thereby.
For a doctor seems not even to study health in this way, but the health of man,
or perhaps rather the health of a particular man; it is individuals that he is
healing. But enough of these topics.
7
Let us again return to the good we are
seeking, and ask what it can be. It seems different in different actions and
arts; it is different in medicine, in strategy, and in the other arts likewise.
What then is the good of each? Surely that for whose sake everything else is
done. In medicine this is health, in strategy victory, in architecture a house,
in any other sphere something else, and in every action and pursuit the end;
for it is for the sake of this that all men do whatever else they do.
Therefore, if there is an end for all that we do, this will be the good
achievable by action, and if there are more than one, these will be the goods
achievable by action. So the argument
has by a different course reached the same point; but we must try to state this
even more clearly. Since there are evidently more than one end, and we choose
some of these (e.g. wealth, flutes, and in general instruments) for the sake of
something else, clearly not all ends are final ends; but the chief good is
evidently something final. Therefore, if there is only one final end, this will
be what we are seeking, and if there are more than one, the most final of these
will be what we are seeking. Now we call that which is in itself worthy of
pursuit more final than that which is worthy of pursuit for the sake of
something else, and that which is never desirable for the sake of something
else more final than the things that are desirable both in themselves and for
the sake of that other thing, and therefore we call final without qualification
that which is always desirable in itself and never for the sake of something
else. Now such a thing happiness, above
all else, is held to be; for this we choose always for self and never for the
sake of something else, but honour, pleasure, reason, and every virtue we
choose indeed for themselves (for if nothing resulted from them we should still
choose each of them), but we choose them also for the sake of happiness,
judging that by means of them we shall be happy. Happiness, on the other hand,
no one chooses for the sake of these, nor, in general, for anything other than
itself. From the point of view of
self-sufficiency the same result seems to follow; for the final good is thought
to be self-sufficient. Now by self-sufficient we do not mean that which is
sufficient for a man by himself, for one who lives a solitary life, but also
for parents, children, wife, and in general for his friends and fellow
citizens, since man is born for citizenship. But some limit must be set to
this; for if we extend our requirement to ancestors and descendants and
friends' friends we are in for an infinite series. Let us examine this
question, however, on another occasion; the self-sufficient we now define as
that which when isolated makes life desirable and lacking in nothing; and such
we think happiness to be; and further we think it most desirable of all things,
without being counted as one good thing among others- if it were so counted it
would clearly be made more desirable by the addition of even the least of
goods; for that which is added becomes an excess of goods, and of goods the
greater is always more desirable. Happiness, then, is something final and
self-sufficient, and is the end of action.
Presumably, however, to say that happiness is the chief good seems a
platitude, and a clearer account of what it is still desired. This might
perhaps be given, if we could first ascertain the function of man. For just as
for a flute-player, a sculptor, or an artist, and, in general, for all things
that have a function or activity, the good and the 'well' is thought to reside
in the function, so would it seem to be for man, if he has a function. Have the
carpenter, then, and the tanner certain functions or activities, and has man
none? Is he born without a function? Or as eye, hand, foot, and in general each
of the parts evidently has a function, may one lay it down that man similarly
has a function apart from all these? What then can this be? Life seems to be
common even to plants, but we are seeking what is peculiar to man. Let us
exclude, therefore, the life of nutrition and growth. Next there would be a
life of perception, but it also seems to be common even to the horse, the ox,
and every animal. There remains, then, an active life of the element that has a
rational principle; of this, one part has such a principle in the sense of
being obedient to one, the other in the sense of possessing one and exercising
thought. And, as 'life of the rational element' also has two meanings, we must
state that life in the sense of activity is what we mean; for this seems to be
the more proper sense of the term. Now if the function of man is an activity of
soul which follows or implies a rational principle, and if we say
'so-and-so-and 'a good so-and-so' have a function which is the same in kind,
e.g. a lyre, and a good lyre-player, and so without qualification in all cases,
eminence in respect of goodness being added to the name of the function (for
the function of a lyre-player is to play the lyre, and that of a good
lyre-player is to do so well): if this is the case, and we state the function
of man to be a certain kind of life, and this to be an activity or actions of
the soul implying a rational principle, and the function of a good man to be
the good and noble performance of these, and if any action is well performed
when it is performed in accordance with the appropriate excellence: if this is
the case, human good turns out to be activity of soul in accordance with
virtue, and if there are more than one virtue, in accordance with the best and
most complete. But we must add 'in a
complete life.' For one swallow does not make a summer, nor does one day; and
so too one day, or a short time, does not make a man blessed and happy. Let this serve as an outline of the good; for
we must presumably first sketch it roughly, and then later fill in the details.
But it would seem that any one is capable of carrying on and articulating what
has once been well outlined, and that time is a good discoverer or partner in
such a work; to which facts the advances of the arts are due; for any one can
add what is lacking. And we must also remember what has been said before, and
not look for precision in all things alike, but in each class of things such
precision as accords with the subject-matter, and so much as is appropriate to the
inquiry. For a carpenter and a geometer investigate the right angle in
different ways; the former does so in so far as the right angle is useful for
his work, while the latter inquires what it is or what sort of thing it is; for
he is a spectator of the truth. We must act in the same way, then, in all other
matters as well, that our main task may not be subordinated to minor questions.
Nor must we demand the cause in all matters alike; it is enough in some cases
that the fact be well established, as in the case of the first principles; the
fact is the primary thing or first principle. Now of first principles we see
some by induction, some by perception, some by a certain habituation, and
others too in other ways. But each set of principles we must try to investigate
in the natural way, and we must take pains to state them definitely, since they
have a great influence on what follows. For the beginning is thought to be more
than half of the whole, and many of the questions we ask are cleared up by it.
8
We must consider it, however, in the light
not only of our conclusion and our premisses, but also of what is commonly said
about it; for with a true view all the data harmonize, but with a false one the
facts soon clash. Now goods have been divided into three classes, and some are
described as external, others as relating to soul or to body; we call those
that relate to soul most properly and truly goods, and psychical actions and
activities we class as relating to soul. Therefore our account must be sound,
at least according to this view, which is an old one and agreed on by
philosophers. It is correct also in that we identify the end with certain
actions and activities; for thus it falls among goods of the soul and not among
external goods. Another belief which harmonizes with our account is that the
happy man lives well and does well; for we have practically defined happiness
as a sort of good life and good action. The characteristics that are looked for
in happiness seem also, all of them, to belong to what we have defined
happiness as being. For some identify happiness with virtue, some with
practical wisdom, others with a kind of philosophic wisdom, others with these,
or one of these, accompanied by pleasure or not without pleasure; while others
include also external prosperity. Now some of these views have been held by
many men and men of old, others by a few eminent persons; and it is not
probable that either of these should be entirely mistaken, but rather that they
should be right in at least some one respect or even in most respects. With those who identify happiness with
virtue or some one virtue our account is in harmony; for to virtue belongs
virtuous activity. But it makes, perhaps, no small difference whether we place
the chief good in possession or in use, in state of mind or in activity. For
the state of mind may exist without producing any good result, as in a man who
is asleep or in some other way quite inactive, but the activity cannot; for one
who has the activity will of necessity be acting, and acting well. And as in
the Olympic Games it is not the most beautiful and the strongest that are
crowned but those who compete (for it is some of these that are victorious), so
those who act win, and rightly win, the noble and good things in life. Their life is also in itself pleasant. For
pleasure is a state of soul, and to each man that which he is said to be a
lover of is pleasant; e.g. not only is a horse pleasant to the lover of horses,
and a spectacle to the lover of sights, but also in the same way just acts are
pleasant to the lover of justice and in general virtuous acts to the lover of
virtue. Now for most men their pleasures are in conflict with one another
because these are not by nature pleasant, but the lovers of what is noble find
pleasant the things that are by nature pleasant; and virtuous actions are such,
so that these are pleasant for such men as well as in their own nature. Their
life, therefore, has no further need of pleasure as a sort of adventitious
charm, but has its pleasure in itself. For, besides what we have said, the man
who does not rejoice in noble actions is not even good; since no one would call
a man just who did not enjoy acting justly, nor any man liberal who did not
enjoy liberal actions; and similarly in all other cases. If this is so,
virtuous actions must be in themselves pleasant. But they are also good and
noble, and have each of these attributes in the highest degree, since the good
man judges well about these attributes; his judgement is such as we have described.
Happiness then is the best, noblest, and most pleasant thing in the world, and
these attributes are not severed as in the inscription at Delos
Most noble is that which is justest, and best
is health; But pleasantest is it to win
what we love.
For all these properties belong to the best
activities; and these, or one- the best- of these, we identify with
happiness. Yet evidently, as we said,
it needs the external goods as well; for it is impossible, or not easy, to do
noble acts without the proper equipment. In many actions we use friends and
riches and political power as instruments; and there are some things the lack
of which takes the lustre from happiness, as good birth, goodly children,
beauty; for the man who is very ugly in appearance or ill-born or solitary and
childless is not very likely to be happy, and perhaps a man would be still less
likely if he had thoroughly bad children or friends or had lost good children
or friends by death. As we said, then, happiness seems to need this sort of
prosperity in addition; for which reason some identify happiness with good
fortune, though others identify it with virtue.
9
For this reason also the question is asked, whether
happiness is to be acquired by learning or by habituation or some other sort of
training, or comes in virtue of some divine providence or again by chance. Now
if there is any gift of the gods to men, it is reasonable that happiness should
be god-given, and most surely god-given of all human things inasmuch as it is
the best. But this question would perhaps be more appropriate to another
inquiry; happiness seems, however, even if it is not god-sent but comes as a
result of virtue and some process of learning or training, to be among the most
godlike things; for that which is the prize and end of virtue seems to be the
best thing in the world, and something godlike and blessed. It will also on this view be very generally
shared; for all who are not maimed as regards their potentiality for virtue may
win it by a certain kind of study and care. But if it is better to be happy
thus than by chance, it is reasonable that the facts should be so, since
everything that depends on the action of nature is by nature as good as it can
be, and similarly everything that depends on art or any rational cause, and
especially if it depends on the best of all causes. To entrust to chance what
is greatest and most noble would be a very defective arrangement. The answer to the question we are asking is
plain also from the definition of happiness; for it has been said to be a
virtuous activity of soul, of a certain kind. Of the remaining goods, some must
necessarily pre-exist as conditions of happiness, and others are naturally
co-operative and useful as instruments. And this will be found to agree with
what we said at the outset; for we stated the end of political science to be
the best end, and political science spends most of its pains on making the
citizens to be of a certain character, viz. good and capable of noble
acts. It is natural, then, that we call
neither ox nor horse nor any other of the animals happy; for none of them is
capable of sharing in such activity. For this reason also a boy is not happy;
for he is not yet capable of such acts, owing to his age; and boys who are
called happy are being congratulated by reason of the hopes we have for them.
For there is required, as we said, not only complete virtue but also a complete
life, since many changes occur in life, and all manner of chances, and the most
prosperous may fall into great misfortunes in old age, as is told of Priam in
the Trojan Cycle; and one who has experienced such chances and has ended
wretchedly no one calls happy.
10
Must no one at all, then, be called happy
while he lives; must we, as Solon says, see the end? Even if we are to lay down
this doctrine, is it also the case that a man is happy when he is dead? Or is
not this quite absurd, especially for us who say that happiness is an activity?
But if we do not call the dead man happy, and if Solon does not mean this, but
that one can then safely call a man blessed as being at last beyond evils and
misfortunes, this also affords matter for discussion; for both evil and good
are thought to exist for a dead man, as much as for one who is alive but not
aware of them; e.g. honours and dishonours and the good or bad fortunes of
children and in general of descendants. And this also presents a problem; for
though a man has lived happily up to old age and has had a death worthy of his
life, many reverses may befall his descendants- some of them may be good and
attain the life they deserve, while with others the opposite may be the case;
and clearly too the degrees of relationship between them and their ancestors
may vary indefinitely. It would be odd, then, if the dead man were to share in
these changes and become at one time happy, at another wretched; while it would
also be odd if the fortunes of the descendants did not for some time have some
effect on the happiness of their ancestors.
But we must return to our first difficulty; for perhaps by a
consideration of it our present problem might be solved. Now if we must see the
end and only then call a man happy, not as being happy but as having been so before,
surely this is a paradox, that when he is happy the attribute that belongs to
him is not to be truly predicated of him because we do not wish to call living
men happy, on account of the changes that may befall them, and because we have
assumed happiness to be something permanent and by no means easily changed,
while a single man may suffer many turns of fortune's wheel. For clearly if we
were to keep pace with his fortunes, we should often call the same man happy
and again wretched, making the happy man out to be chameleon and insecurely
based. Or is this keeping pace with his fortunes quite wrong? Success or
failure in life does not depend on these, but human life, as we said, needs
these as mere additions, while virtuous activities or their opposites are what
constitute happiness or the reverse.
The question we have now discussed confirms our definition. For no
function of man has so much permanence as virtuous activities (these are
thought to be more durable even than knowledge of the sciences), and of these
themselves the most valuable are more durable because those who are happy spend
their life most readily and most continuously in these; for this seems to be
the reason why we do not forget them. The attribute in question, then, will
belong to the happy man, and he will be happy throughout his life; for always,
or by preference to everything else, he will be engaged in virtuous action and
contemplation, and he will bear the chances of life most nobly and altogether
decorously, if he is 'truly good' and 'foursquare beyond reproach'. Now many events happen by chance, and events
differing in importance; small pieces of good fortune or of its opposite
clearly do not weigh down the scales of life one way or the other, but a
multitude of great events if they turn out well will make life happier (for not
only are they themselves such as to add beauty to life, but the way a man deals
with them may be noble and good), while if they turn out ill they crush and
maim happiness; for they both bring pain with them and hinder many activities.
Yet even in these nobility shines through, when a man bears with resignation
many great misfortunes, not through insensibility to pain but through nobility
and greatness of soul. If activities
are, as we said, what gives life its character, no happy man can become
miserable; for he will never do the acts that are hateful and mean. For the man
who is truly good and wise, we think, bears all the chances life becomingly and
always makes the best of circumstances, as a good general makes the best
military use of the army at his command and a good shoemaker makes the best
shoes out of the hides that are given him; and so with all other craftsmen. And
if this is the case, the happy man can never become miserable; though he will
not reach blessedness, if he meet with fortunes like those of Priam. Nor, again, is he many-coloured and
changeable; for neither will he be moved from his happy state easily or by any
ordinary misadventures, but only by many great ones, nor, if he has had many
great misadventures, will he recover his happiness in a short time, but if at
all, only in a long and complete one in which he has attained many splendid
successes. When then should we not say
that he is happy who is active in accordance with complete virtue and is
sufficiently equipped with external goods, not for some chance period but
throughout a complete life? Or must we add 'and who is destined to live thus
and die as befits his life'? Certainly the future is obscure to us, while
happiness, we claim, is an end and something in every way final. If so, we
shall call happy those among living men in whom these conditions are, and are
to be, fulfilled- but happy men. So much for these questions.
11
That the fortunes of descendants and of all a
man's friends should not affect his happiness at all seems a very unfriendly
doctrine, and one opposed to the opinions men hold; but since the events that
happen are numerous and admit of all sorts of difference, and some come more
near to us and others less so, it seems a long- nay, an infinite- task to
discuss each in detail; a general outline will perhaps suffice. If, then, as
some of a man's own misadventures have a certain weight and influence on life
while others are, as it were, lighter, so too there are differences among the
misadventures of our friends taken as a whole, and it makes a difference
whether the various suffering befall the living or the dead (much more even
than whether lawless and terrible deeds are presupposed in a tragedy or done on
the stage), this difference also must be taken into account; or rather,
perhaps, the fact that doubt is felt whether the dead share in any good or
evil. For it seems, from these considerations, that even if anything whether
good or evil penetrates to them, it must be something weak and negligible,
either in itself or for them, or if not, at least it must be such in degree and
kind as not to make happy those who are not happy nor to take away their
blessedness from those who are. The good or bad fortunes of friends, then, seem
to have some effects on the dead, but effects of such a kind and degree as
neither to make the happy unhappy nor to produce any other change of the
kind.
12
These questions having been definitely
answered, let us consider whether happiness is among the things that are
praised or rather among the things that are prized; for clearly it is not to be
placed among potentialities. Everything that is praised seems to be praised
because it is of a certain kind and is related somehow to something else; for
we praise the just or brave man and in general both the good man and virtue
itself because of the actions and functions involved, and we praise the strong
man, the good runner, and so on, because he is of a certain kind and is related
in a certain way to something good and important. This is clear also from the
praises of the gods; for it seems absurd that the gods should be referred to
our standard, but this is done because praise involves a reference, to
something else. But if if praise is for things such as we have described,
clearly what applies to the best things is not praise, but something greater
and better, as is indeed obvious; for what we do to the gods and the most
godlike of men is to call them blessed and happy. And so too with good things;
no one praises happiness as he does justice, but rather calls it blessed, as
being something more divine and better.
Eudoxus also seems to have been right in his method of advocating the
supremacy of pleasure; he thought that the fact that, though a good, it is not
praised indicated it to be better than the things that are praised, and that
this is what God and the good are; for by reference to these all other things
are judged. Praise is appropriate to virtue, for as a result of virtue men tend
to do noble deeds, but encomia are bestowed on acts, whether of the body or of
the soul. But perhaps nicety in these matters is more proper to those who have
made a study of encomia; to us it is clear from what has been said that
happiness is among the things that are prized and perfect. It seems to be so
also from the fact that it is a first principle; for it is for the sake of this
that we all do all that we do, and the first principle and cause of goods is,
we claim, something prized and divine.
13
Since happiness is an activity of soul in
accordance with perfect virtue, we must consider the nature of virtue; for
perhaps we shall thus see better the nature of happiness. The true student of
politics, too, is thought to have studied virtue above all things; for he
wishes to make his fellow citizens good and obedient to the laws. As an example
of this we have the lawgivers of the Cretans and the Spartans, and any others
of the kind that there may have been. And if this inquiry belongs to political
science, clearly the pursuit of it will be in accordance with our original
plan. But clearly the virtue we must study is human virtue; for the good we
were seeking was human good and the happiness human happiness. By human virtue
we mean not that of the body but that of the soul; and happiness also we call
an activity of soul. But if this is so, clearly the student of politics must
know somehow the facts about soul, as the man who is to heal the eyes or the
body as a whole must know about the eyes or the body; and all the more since
politics is more prized and better than medicine; but even among doctors the
best educated spend much labour on acquiring knowledge of the body. The student
of politics, then, must study the soul, and must study it with these objects in
view, and do so just to the extent which is sufficient for the questions we are
discussing; for further precision is perhaps something more laborious than our
purposes require. Some things are said
about it, adequately enough, even in the discussions outside our school, and we
must use these; e.g. that one element in the soul is irrational and one has a
rational principle. Whether these are separated as the parts of the body or of
anything divisible are, or are distinct by definition but by nature inseparable,
like convex and concave in the circumference of a circle, does not affect the
present question. Of the irrational
element one division seems to be widely distributed, and vegetative in its
nature, I mean that which causes nutrition and growth; for it is this kind of
power of the soul that one must assign to all nurslings and to embryos, and
this same power to fullgrown creatures; this is more reasonable than to assign
some different power to them. Now the excellence of this seems to be common to
all species and not specifically human; for this part or faculty seems to
function most in sleep, while goodness and badness are least manifest in sleep
(whence comes the saying that the happy are not better off than the wretched
for half their lives; and this happens naturally enough, since sleep is an
inactivity of the soul in that respect in which it is called good or bad),
unless perhaps to a small extent some of the movements actually penetrate to
the soul, and in this respect the dreams of good men are better than those of
ordinary people. Enough of this subject, however; let us leave the nutritive
faculty alone, since it has by its nature no share in human excellence. There seems to be also another irrational
element in the soul-one which in a sense, however, shares in a rational
principle. For we praise the rational principle of the continent man and of the
incontinent, and the part of their soul that has such a principle, since it
urges them aright and towards the best objects; but there is found in them also
another element naturally opposed to the rational principle, which fights
against and resists that principle. For exactly as paralysed limbs when we
intend to move them to the right turn on the contrary to the left, so is it
with the soul; the impulses of incontinent people move in contrary directions.
But while in the body we see that which moves astray, in the soul we do not. No
doubt, however, we must none the less suppose that in the soul too there is
something contrary to the rational principle, resisting and opposing it. In
what sense it is distinct from the other elements does not concern us. Now even
this seems to have a share in a rational principle, as we said; at any rate in
the continent man it obeys the rational principle and presumably in the
temperate and brave man it is still more obedient; for in him it speaks, on all
matters, with the same voice as the rational principle. Therefore the irrational element also
appears to be two-fold. For the vegetative element in no way shares in a rational
principle, but the appetitive and in general the desiring element in a sense
shares in it, in so far as it listens to and obeys it; this is the sense in
which we speak of 'taking account' of one's father or one's friends, not that
in which we speak of 'accounting for a mathematical property. That the
irrational element is in some sense persuaded by a rational principle is
indicated also by the giving of advice and by all reproof and exhortation. And
if this element also must be said to have a rational principle, that which has
a rational principle (as well as that which has not) will be twofold, one
subdivision having it in the strict sense and in itself, and the other having a
tendency to obey as one does one's father.
Virtue too is distinguished into kinds in accordance with this
difference; for we say that some of the virtues are intellectual and others
moral, philosophic wisdom and understanding and practical wisdom being
intellectual, liberality and temperance moral. For in speaking about a man's character
we do not say that he is wise or has understanding but that he is good-tempered
or temperate; yet we praise the wise man also with respect to his state of
mind; and of states of mind we call those which merit praise virtues.
BOOK II
1
VIRTUE, then, being of two kinds,
intellectual and moral, intellectual virtue in the main owes both its birth and
its growth to teaching (for which reason it requires experience and time),
while moral virtue comes about as a result of habit, whence also its name
(ethike) is one that is formed by a slight variation from the word ethos
(habit). From this it is also plain that none of the moral virtues arises in us
by nature; for nothing that exists by nature can form a habit contrary to its
nature. For instance the stone which by nature moves downwards cannot be
habituated to move upwards, not even if one tries to train it by throwing it up
ten thousand times; nor can fire be habituated to move downwards, nor can
anything else that by nature behaves in one way be trained to behave in
another. Neither by nature, then, nor contrary to nature do the virtues arise
in us; rather we are adapted by nature to receive them, and are made perfect by
habit. Again, of all the things that
come to us by nature we first acquire the potentiality and later exhibit the
activity (this is plain in the case of the senses; for it was not by often
seeing or often hearing that we got these senses, but on the contrary we had
them before we used them, and did not come to have them by using them); but the
virtues we get by first exercising them, as also happens in the case of the
arts as well. For the things we have to learn before we can do them, we learn
by doing them, e.g. men become builders by building and lyreplayers by playing
the lyre; so too we become just by doing just acts, temperate by doing
temperate acts, brave by doing brave acts.
This is confirmed by what happens in states; for legislators make the
citizens good by forming habits in them, and this is the wish of every
legislator, and those who do not effect it miss their mark, and it is in this
that a good constitution differs from a bad one. Again, it is from the same causes and by the same means that
every virtue is both produced and destroyed, and similarly every art; for it is
from playing the lyre that both good and bad lyre-players are produced. And the
corresponding statement is true of builders and of all the rest; men will be
good or bad builders as a result of building well or badly. For if this were
not so, there would have been no need of a teacher, but all men would have been
born good or bad at their craft. This, then, is the case with the virtues also;
by doing the acts that we do in our transactions with other men we become just
or unjust, and by doing the acts that we do in the presence of danger, and
being habituated to feel fear or confidence, we become brave or cowardly. The
same is true of appetites and feelings of anger; some men become temperate and
good-tempered, others self-indulgent and irascible, by behaving in one way or
the other in the appropriate circumstances. Thus, in one word, states of
character arise out of like activities. This is why the activities we exhibit
must be of a certain kind; it is because the states of character correspond to
the differences between these. It makes no small difference, then, whether we
form habits of one kind or of another from our very youth; it makes a very
great difference, or rather all the difference.
2
Since, then, the present inquiry does not aim
at theoretical knowledge like the others (for we are inquiring not in order to
know what virtue is, but in order to become good, since otherwise our inquiry
would have been of no use), we must examine the nature of actions, namely how
we ought to do them; for these determine also the nature of the states of
character that are produced, as we have said. Now, that we must act according
to the right rule is a common principle and must be assumed-it will be
discussed later, i.e. both what the right rule is, and how it is related to the
other virtues. But this must be agreed upon beforehand, that the whole account
of matters of conduct must be given in outline and not precisely, as we said at
the very beginning that the accounts we demand must be in accordance with the subject-matter;
matters concerned with conduct and questions of what is good for us have no
fixity, any more than matters of health. The general account being of this
nature, the account of particular cases is yet more lacking in exactness; for
they do not fall under any art or precept but the agents themselves must in
each case consider what is appropriate to the occasion, as happens also in the
art of medicine or of navigation. But
though our present account is of this nature we must give what help we can.
First, then, let us consider this, that it is the nature of such things to be
destroyed by defect and excess, as we see in the case of strength and of health
(for to gain light on things imperceptible we must use the evidence of sensible
things); both excessive and defective exercise destroys the strength, and
similarly drink or food which is above or below a certain amount destroys the
health, while that which is proportionate both produces and increases and
preserves it. So too is it, then, in the case of temperance and courage and the
other virtues. For the man who flies from and fears everything and does not
stand his ground against anything becomes a coward, and the man who fears
nothing at all but goes to meet every danger becomes rash; and similarly the
man who indulges in every pleasure and abstains from none becomes
self-indulgent, while the man who shuns every pleasure, as boors do, becomes in
a way insensible; temperance and courage, then, are destroyed by excess and
defect, and preserved by the mean. But
not only are the sources and causes of their origination and growth the same as
those of their destruction, but also the sphere of their actualization will be
the same; for this is also true of the things which are more evident to sense,
e.g. of strength; it is produced by taking much food and undergoing much
exertion, and it is the strong man that will be most able to do these things.
So too is it with the virtues; by abstaining from pleasures we become
temperate, and it is when we have become so that we are most able to abstain
from them; and similarly too in the case of courage; for by being habituated to
despise things that are terrible and to stand our ground against them we become
brave, and it is when we have become so that we shall be most able to stand our
ground against them.
3
We must take as a sign of states of character
the pleasure or pain that ensues on acts; for the man who abstains from bodily
pleasures and delights in this very fact is temperate, while the man who is
annoyed at it is self-indulgent, and he who stands his ground against things
that are terrible and delights in this or at least is not pained is brave,
while the man who is pained is a coward. For moral excellence is concerned with
pleasures and pains; it is on account of the pleasure that we do bad things,
and on account of the pain that we abstain from noble ones. Hence we ought to
have been brought up in a particular way from our very youth, as Plato says, so
as both to delight in and to be pained by the things that we ought; for this is
the right education. Again, if the
virtues are concerned with actions and passions, and every passion and every
action is accompanied by pleasure and pain, for this reason also virtue will be
concerned with pleasures and pains. This is indicated also by the fact that
punishment is inflicted by these means; for it is a kind of cure, and it is the
nature of cures to be effected by contraries.
Again, as we said but lately, every state of soul has a nature relative
to and concerned with the kind of things by which it tends to be made worse or
better; but it is by reason of pleasures and pains that men become bad, by
pursuing and avoiding these- either the pleasures and pains they ought not or
when they ought not or as they ought not, or by going wrong in one of the other
similar ways that may be distinguished. Hence men even define the virtues as
certain states of impassivity and rest; not well, however, because they speak
absolutely, and do not say 'as one ought' and 'as one ought not' and 'when one
ought or ought not', and the other things that may be added. We assume, then,
that this kind of excellence tends to do what is best with regard to pleasures
and pains, and vice does the contrary.
The following facts also may show us that virtue and vice are concerned
with these same things. There being three objects of choice and three of
avoidance, the noble, the advantageous, the pleasant, and their contraries, the
base, the injurious, the painful, about all of these the good man tends to go
right and the bad man to go wrong, and especially about pleasure; for this is
common to the animals, and also it accompanies all objects of choice; for even
the noble and the advantageous appear pleasant. Again, it has grown up with us all from our infancy; this is why
it is difficult to rub off this passion, engrained as it is in our life. And we
measure even our actions, some of us more and others less, by the rule of
pleasure and pain. For this reason, then, our whole inquiry must be about
these; for to feel delight and pain rightly or wrongly has no small effect on
our actions. Again, it is harder to
fight with pleasure than with anger, to use Heraclitus' phrase', but both art
and virtue are always concerned with what is harder; for even the good is
better when it is harder. Therefore for this reason also the whole concern both
of virtue and of political science is with pleasures and pains; for the man who
uses these well will be good, he who uses them badly bad. That virtue, then, is concerned with
pleasures and pains, and that by the acts from which it arises it is both
increased and, if they are done differently, destroyed, and that the acts from
which it arose are those in which it actualizes itself- let this be taken as
said.
4
The question might be asked,; what we mean by
saying that we must become just by doing just acts, and temperate by doing
temperate acts; for if men do just and temperate acts, they are already just
and temperate, exactly as, if they do what is in accordance with the laws of
grammar and of music, they are grammarians and musicians. Or is this not true even of the arts? It is
possible to do something that is in accordance with the laws of grammar, either
by chance or at the suggestion of another. A man will be a grammarian, then,
only when he has both done something grammatical and done it grammatically; and
this means doing it in accordance with the grammatical knowledge in
himself. Again, the case of the arts
and that of the virtues are not similar; for the products of the arts have
their goodness in themselves, so that it is enough that they should have a
certain character, but if the acts that are in accordance with the virtues have
themselves a certain character it does not follow that they are done justly or
temperately. The agent also must be in a certain condition when he does them;
in the first place he must have knowledge, secondly he must choose the acts,
and choose them for their own sakes, and thirdly his action must proceed from a
firm and unchangeable character. These are not reckoned in as conditions of the
possession of the arts, except the bare knowledge; but as a condition of the
possession of the virtues knowledge has little or no weight, while the other
conditions count not for a little but for everything, i.e. the very conditions
which result from often doing just and temperate acts. Actions, then, are called just and temperate
when they are such as the just or the temperate man would do; but it is not the
man who does these that is just and temperate, but the man who also does them
as just and temperate men do them. It is well said, then, that it is by doing
just acts that the just man is produced, and by doing temperate acts the
temperate man; without doing these no one would have even a prospect of
becoming good. But most people do not
do these, but take refuge in theory and think they are being philosophers and
will become good in this way, behaving somewhat like patients who listen
attentively to their doctors, but do none of the things they are ordered to do.
As the latter will not be made well in body by such a course of treatment, the
former will not be made well in soul by such a course of philosophy.
5
Next we must consider what virtue is. Since
things that are found in the soul are of three kinds- passions, faculties,
states of character, virtue must be one of these. By passions I mean appetite,
anger, fear, confidence, envy, joy, friendly feeling, hatred, longing,
emulation, pity, and in general the feelings that are accompanied by pleasure
or pain; by faculties the things in virtue of which we are said to be capable
of feeling these, e.g. of becoming angry or being pained or feeling pity; by
states of character the things in virtue of which we stand well or badly with
reference to the passions, e.g. with reference to anger we stand badly if we
feel it violently or too weakly, and well if we feel it moderately; and
similarly with reference to the other passions. Now neither the virtues nor the vices are passions, because we
are not called good or bad on the ground of our passions, but are so called on
the ground of our virtues and our vices, and because we are neither praised nor
blamed for our passions (for the man who feels fear or anger is not praised,
nor is the man who simply feels anger blamed, but the man who feels it in a
certain way), but for our virtues and our vices we are praised or blamed. Again, we feel anger and fear without
choice, but the virtues are modes of choice or involve choice. Further, in
respect of the passions we are said to be moved, but in respect of the virtues
and the vices we are said not to be moved but to be disposed in a particular
way. For these reasons also they are
not faculties; for we are neither called good nor bad, nor praised nor blamed,
for the simple capacity of feeling the passions; again, we have the faculties
by nature, but we are not made good or bad by nature; we have spoken of this
before. If, then, the virtues are neither passions nor faculties, all that
remains is that they should be states of character. Thus we have stated what virtue is in respect of its genus.
6
We must, however, not only describe virtue as
a state of character, but also say what sort of state it is. We may remark,
then, that every virtue or excellence both brings into good condition the thing
of which it is the excellence and makes the work of that thing be done well;
e.g. the excellence of the eye makes both the eye and its work good; for it is
by the excellence of the eye that we see well. Similarly the excellence of the
horse makes a horse both good in itself and good at running and at carrying its
rider and at awaiting the attack of the enemy. Therefore, if this is true in
every case, the virtue of man also will be the state of character which makes a
man good and which makes him do his own work well. How this is to happen we have stated already, but it will be made
plain also by the following consideration of the specific nature of virtue. In
everything that is continuous and divisible it is possible to take more, less,
or an equal amount, and that either in terms of the thing itself or relatively
to us; and the equal is an intermediate between excess and defect. By the
intermediate in the object I mean that which is equidistant from each of the
extremes, which is one and the same for all men; by the intermediate relatively
to us that which is neither too much nor too little- and this is not one, nor
the same for all. For instance, if ten is many and two is few, six is the
intermediate, taken in terms of the object; for it exceeds and is exceeded by
an equal amount; this is intermediate according to arithmetical proportion. But
the intermediate relatively to us is not to be taken so; if ten pounds are too
much for a particular person to eat and two too little, it does not follow that
the trainer will order six pounds; for this also is perhaps too much for the
person who is to take it, or too little- too little for Milo, too much for the
beginner in athletic exercises. The same is true of running and wrestling. Thus
a master of any art avoids excess and defect, but seeks the intermediate and
chooses this- the intermediate not in the object but relatively to us. If it is thus, then, that every art does its
work well- by looking to the intermediate and judgling its works by this
standard (so that we often say of good works of art that it is not possible
either to take away or to add anything, implying that excess and defect destroy
the goodness of works of art, while the mean preserves it; and good artists, as
we say, look to this in their work), and if, further, virtue is more exact and
better than any art, as nature also is, then virtue must have the quality of
aiming at the intermediate. I mean moral virtue; for it is this that is
concerned with passions and actions, and in these there is excess, defect, and
the intermediate. For instance, both fear and confidence and appetite and anger
and pity and in general pleasure and pain may be felt both too much and too
little, and in both cases not well; but to feel them at the right times, with
reference to the right objects, towards the right people, with the right
motive, and in the right way, is what is both intermediate and best, and this
is characteristic of virtue. Similarly with regard to actions also there is
excess, defect, and the intermediate. Now virtue is concerned with passions and
actions, in which excess is a form of failure, and so is defect, while the
intermediate is praised and is a form of success; and being praised and being
successful are both characteristics of virtue. Therefore virtue is a kind of
mean, since, as we have seen, it aims at what is intermediate. Again, it is possible to fail in many ways
(for evil belongs to the class of the unlimited, as the Pythagoreans
conjectured, and good to that of the limited), while to succeed is possible
only in one way (for which reason also one is easy and the other difficult- to
miss the mark easy, to hit it difficult); for these reasons also, then, excess
and defect are characteristic of vice, and the mean of virtue;
For men are good in but one way, but bad in
many.
Virtue, then, is a state of character
concerned with choice, lying in a mean, i.e. the mean relative to us, this
being determined by a rational principle, and by that principle by which the
man of practical wisdom would determine it. Now it is a mean between two vices,
that which depends on excess and that which depends on defect; and again it is
a mean because the vices respectively fall short of or exceed what is right in
both passions and actions, while virtue both finds and chooses that which is
intermediate. Hence in respect of its substance and the definition which states
its essence virtue is a mean, with regard to what is best and right an
extreme. But not every action nor every
passion admits of a mean; for some have names that already imply badness, e.g.
spite, shamelessness, envy, and in the case of actions adultery, theft, murder;
for all of these and suchlike things imply by their names that they are
themselves bad, and not the excesses or deficiencies of them. It is not
possible, then, ever to be right with regard to them; one must always be wrong.
Nor does goodness or badness with regard to such things depend on committing
adultery with the right woman, at the right time, and in the right way, but
simply to do any of them is to go wrong. It would be equally absurd, then, to
expect that in unjust, cowardly, and voluptuous action there should be a mean,
an excess, and a deficiency; for at that rate there would be a mean of excess
and of deficiency, an excess of excess, and a deficiency of deficiency. But as
there is no excess and deficiency of temperance and courage because what is
intermediate is in a sense an extreme, so too of the actions we have mentioned
there is no mean nor any excess and deficiency, but however they are done they
are wrong; for in general there is neither a mean of excess and deficiency, nor
excess and deficiency of a mean.
7
We must, however, not only make this general
statement, but also apply it to the individual facts. For among statements
about conduct those which are general apply more widely, but those which are
particular are more genuine, since conduct has to do with individual cases, and
our statements must harmonize with the facts in these cases. We may take these
cases from our table. With regard to feelings of fear and confidence courage is
the mean; of the people who exceed, he who exceeds in fearlessness has no name
(many of the states have no name), while the man who exceeds in confidence is rash,
and he who exceeds in fear and falls short in confidence is a coward. With
regard to pleasures and pains- not all of them, and not so much with regard to
the pains- the mean is temperance, the excess self-indulgence. Persons
deficient with regard to the pleasures are not often found; hence such persons
also have received no name. But let us call them 'insensible'. With regard to giving and taking of money
the mean is liberality, the excess and the defect prodigality and meanness. In
these actions people exceed and fall short in contrary ways; the prodigal
exceeds in spending and falls short in taking, while the mean man exceeds in
taking and falls short in spending. (At present we are giving a mere outline or
summary, and are satisfied with this; later these states will be more exactly
determined.) With regard to money there are also other dispositions- a mean,
magnificence (for the magnificent man differs from the liberal man; the former
deals with large sums, the latter with small ones), an excess, tastelessness
and vulgarity, and a deficiency, niggardliness; these differ from the states
opposed to liberality, and the mode of their difference will be stated later.
With regard to honour and dishonour the mean is proper pride, the excess is
known as a sort of 'empty vanity', and the deficiency is undue humility; and as
we said liberality was related to magnificence, differing from it by dealing
with small sums, so there is a state similarly related to proper pride, being
concerned with small honours while that is concerned with great. For it is
possible to desire honour as one ought, and more than one ought, and less, and
the man who exceeds in his desires is called ambitious, the man who falls short
unambitious, while the intermediate person has no name. The dispositions also
are nameless, except that that of the ambitious man is called ambition. Hence
the people who are at the extremes lay claim to the middle place; and we
ourselves sometimes call the intermediate person ambitious and sometimes
unambitious, and sometimes praise the ambitious man and sometimes the
unambitious. The reason of our doing this will be stated in what follows; but
now let us speak of the remaining states according to the method which has been
indicated. With regard to anger also there
is an excess, a deficiency, and a mean. Although they can scarcely be said to
have names, yet since we call the intermediate person good-tempered let us call
the mean good temper; of the persons at the extremes let the one who exceeds be
called irascible, and his vice irascibility, and the man who falls short an
inirascible sort of person, and the deficiency inirascibility. There are also three other means, which have
a certain likeness to one another, but differ from one another: for they are
all concerned with intercourse in words and actions, but differ in that one is
concerned with truth in this sphere, the other two with pleasantness; and of
this one kind is exhibited in giving amusement, the other in all the
circumstances of life. We must therefore speak of these too, that we may the
better see that in all things the mean is praise-worthy, and the extremes
neither praiseworthy nor right, but worthy of blame. Now most of these states
also have no names, but we must try, as in the other cases, to invent names
ourselves so that we may be clear and easy to follow. With regard to truth,
then, the intermediate is a truthful sort of person and the mean may be called
truthfulness, while the pretence which exaggerates is boastfulness and the
person characterized by it a boaster, and that which understates is mock
modesty and the person characterized by it mock-modest. With regard to
pleasantness in the giving of amusement the intermediate person is ready-witted
and the disposition ready wit, the excess is buffoonery and the person
characterized by it a buffoon, while the man who falls short is a sort of boor
and his state is boorishness. With regard to the remaining kind of
pleasantness, that which is exhibited in life in general, the man who is
pleasant in the right way is friendly and the mean is friendliness, while the
man who exceeds is an obsequious person if he has no end in view, a flatterer
if he is aiming at his own advantage, and the man who falls short and is
unpleasant in all circumstances is a quarrelsome and surly sort of person. There are also means in the passions and
concerned with the passions; since shame is not a virtue, and yet praise is
extended to the modest man. For even in these matters one man is said to be
intermediate, and another to exceed, as for instance the bashful man who is
ashamed of everything; while he who falls short or is not ashamed of anything
at all is shameless, and the intermediate person is modest. Righteous
indignation is a mean between envy and spite, and these states are concerned
with the pain and pleasure that are felt at the fortunes of our neighbours; the
man who is characterized by righteous indignation is pained at undeserved good
fortune, the envious man, going beyond him, is pained at all good fortune, and
the spiteful man falls so far short of being pained that he even rejoices. But
these states there will be an opportunity of describing elsewhere; with regard
to justice, since it has not one simple meaning, we shall, after describing the
other states, distinguish its two kinds and say how each of them is a mean; and
similarly we shall treat also of the rational virtues.
8
There are three kinds of disposition, then,
two of them vices, involving excess and deficiency respectively, and one a virtue,
viz. the mean, and all are in a sense opposed to all; for the extreme states
are contrary both to the intermediate state and to each other, and the
intermediate to the extremes; as the equal is greater relatively to the less,
less relatively to the greater, so the middle states are excessive relatively
to the deficiencies, deficient relatively to the excesses, both in passions and
in actions. For the brave man appears rash relatively to the coward, and
cowardly relatively to the rash man; and similarly the temperate man appears
self-indulgent relatively to the insensible man, insensible relatively to the
self-indulgent, and the liberal man prodigal relatively to the mean man, mean
relatively to the prodigal. Hence also the people at the extremes push the
intermediate man each over to the other, and the brave man is called rash by
the coward, cowardly by the rash man, and correspondingly in the other
cases. These states being thus opposed
to one another, the greatest contrariety is that of the extremes to each other,
rather than to the intermediate; for these are further from each other than
from the intermediate, as the great is further from the small and the small
from the great than both are from the equal. Again, to the intermediate some
extremes show a certain likeness, as that of rashness to courage and that of
prodigality to liberality; but the extremes show the greatest unlikeness to
each other; now contraries are defined as the things that are furthest from
each other, so that things that are further apart are more contrary. To the mean in some cases the deficiency, in
some the excess is more opposed; e.g. it is not rashness, which is an excess,
but cowardice, which is a deficiency, that is more opposed to courage, and not
insensibility, which is a deficiency, but self-indulgence, which is an excess,
that is more opposed to temperance. This happens from two reasons, one being
drawn from the thing itself; for because one extreme is nearer and liker to the
intermediate, we oppose not this but rather its contrary to the intermediate.
E.g. since rashness is thought liker and nearer to courage, and cowardice more
unlike, we oppose rather the latter to courage; for things that are further
from the intermediate are thought more contrary to it. This, then, is one
cause, drawn from the thing itself; another is drawn from ourselves; for the
things to which we ourselves more naturally tend seem more contrary to the
intermediate. For instance, we ourselves tend more naturally to pleasures, and
hence are more easily carried away towards self-indulgence than towards
propriety. We describe as contrary to the mean, then, rather the directions in
which we more often go to great lengths; and therefore self-indulgence, which
is an excess, is the more contrary to temperance.
9
That moral virtue is a mean, then, and in
what sense it is so, and that it is a mean between two vices, the one involving
excess, the other deficiency, and that it is such because its character is to
aim at what is intermediate in passions and in actions, has been sufficiently
stated. Hence also it is no easy task to be good. For in everything it is no
easy task to find the middle, e.g. to find the middle of a circle is not for
every one but for him who knows; so, too, any one can get angry- that is easy-
or give or spend money; but to do this to the right person, to the right
extent, at the right time, with the right motive, and in the right way, that is
not for every one, nor is it easy; wherefore goodness is both rare and laudable
and noble. Hence he who aims at the
intermediate must first depart from what is the more contrary to it, as Calypso
advises
Hold the ship out beyond that surf and spray.
For of the extremes one is more erroneous,
one less so; therefore, since to hit the mean is hard in the extreme, we must
as a second best, as people say, take the least of the evils; and this will be
done best in the way we describe. But we must consider the things towards which
we ourselves also are easily carried away; for some of us tend to one thing,
some to another; and this will be recognizable from the pleasure and the pain
we feel. We must drag ourselves away to the contrary extreme; for we shall get
into the intermediate state by drawing well away from error, as people do in
straightening sticks that are bent. Now
in everything the pleasant or pleasure is most to be guarded against; for we do
not judge it impartially. We ought, then, to feel towards pleasure as the
elders of the people felt towards Helen, and in all circumstances repeat their
saying; for if we dismiss pleasure thus we are less likely to go astray. It is
by doing this, then, (to sum the matter up) that we shall best be able to hit
the mean. But this is no doubt
difficult, and especially in individual cases; for or is not easy to determine
both how and with whom and on what provocation and how long one should be
angry; for we too sometimes praise those who fall short and call them
good-tempered, but sometimes we praise those who get angry and call them manly.
The man, however, who deviates little from goodness is not blamed, whether he
do so in the direction of the more or of the less, but only the man who
deviates more widely; for he does not fail to be noticed. But up to what point
and to what extent a man must deviate before he becomes blameworthy it is not
easy to determine by reasoning, any more than anything else that is perceived
by the senses; such things depend on particular facts, and the decision rests
with perception. So much, then, is plain, that the intermediate state is in all
things to be praised, but that we must incline sometimes towards the excess,
sometimes towards the deficiency; for so shall we most easily hit the mean and
what is right.
BOOK III
1
SINCE virtue is concerned with passions and
actions, and on voluntary passions and actions praise and blame are bestowed,
on those that are involuntary pardon, and sometimes also pity, to distinguish
the voluntary and the involuntary is presumably necessary for those who are
studying the nature of virtue, and useful also for legislators with a view to
the assigning both of honours and of punishments. Those things, then, are
thought-involuntary, which take place under compulsion or owing to ignorance;
and that is compulsory of which the moving principle is outside, being a
principle in which nothing is contributed by the person who is acting or is
feeling the passion, e.g. if he were to be carried somewhere by a wind, or by
men who had him in their power. But
with regard to the things that are done from fear of greater evils or for some
noble object (e.g. if a tyrant were to order one to do something base, having
one's parents and children in his power, and if one did the action they were to
be saved, but otherwise would be put to death), it may be debated whether such
actions are involuntary or voluntary. Something of the sort happens also with
regard to the throwing of goods overboard in a storm; for in the abstract no
one throws goods away voluntarily, but on condition of its securing the safety
of himself and his crew any sensible man does so. Such actions, then, are
mixed, but are more like voluntary actions; for they are worthy of choice at
the time when they are done, and the end of an action is relative to the
occasion. Both the terms, then, 'voluntary' and 'involuntary', must be used
with reference to the moment of action. Now the man acts voluntarily; for the
principle that moves the instrumental parts of the body in such actions is in
him, and the things of which the moving principle is in a man himself are in
his power to do or not to do. Such actions, therefore, are voluntary, but in
the abstract perhaps involuntary; for no one would choose any such act in
itself. For such actions men are
sometimes even praised, when they endure something base or painful in return
for great and noble objects gained; in the opposite case they are blamed, since
to endure the greatest indignities for no noble end or for a trifling end is
the mark of an inferior person. On some actions praise indeed is not bestowed,
but pardon is, when one does what he ought not under pressure which overstrains
human nature and which no one could withstand. But some acts, perhaps, we
cannot be forced to do, but ought rather to face death after the most fearful
sufferings; for the things that 'forced' Euripides Alcmaeon to slay his mother
seem absurd. It is difficult sometimes to determine what should be chosen at
what cost, and what should be endured in return for what gain, and yet more
difficult to abide by our decisions; for as a rule what is expected is painful,
and what we are forced to do is base, whence praise and blame are bestowed on
those who have been compelled or have not.
What sort of acts, then, should be called compulsory? We answer that
without qualification actions are so when the cause is in the external
circumstances and the agent contributes nothing. But the things that in
themselves are involuntary, but now and in return for these gains are worthy of
choice, and whose moving principle is in the agent, are in themselves
involuntary, but now and in return for these gains voluntary. They are more
like voluntary acts; for actions are in the class of particulars, and the
particular acts here are voluntary. What sort of things are to be chosen, and
in return for what, it is not easy to state; for there are many differences in
the particular cases. But if some one
were to say that pleasant and noble objects have a compelling power, forcing us
from without, all acts would be for him compulsory; for it is for these objects
that all men do everything they do. And those who act under compulsion and
unwillingly act with pain, but those who do acts for their pleasantness and
nobility do them with pleasure; it is absurd to make external circumstances
responsible, and not oneself, as being easily caught by such attractions, and
to make oneself responsible for noble acts but the pleasant objects responsible
for base acts. The compulsory, then, seems to be that whose moving principle is
outside, the person compelled contributing nothing. Everything that is done by reason of ignorance is not voluntary;
it is only what produces pain and repentance that is involuntary. For the man
who has done something owing to ignorance, and feels not the least vexation at
his action, has not acted voluntarily, since he did not know what he was doing,
nor yet involuntarily, since he is not pained. Of people, then, who act by
reason of ignorance he who repents is thought an involuntary agent, and the man
who does not repent may, since he is different, be called a not voluntary
agent; for, since he differs from the other, it is better that he should have a
name of his own. Acting by reason of
ignorance seems also to be different from acting in ignorance; for the man who
is drunk or in a rage is thought to act as a result not of ignorance but of one
of the causes mentioned, yet not knowingly but in ignorance. Now every wicked man is ignorant of what he
ought to do and what he ought to abstain from, and it is by reason of error of
this kind that men become unjust and in general bad; but the term 'involuntary'
tends to be used not if a man is ignorant of what is to his advantage- for it
is not mistaken purpose that causes involuntary action (it leads rather to
wickedness), nor ignorance of the universal (for that men are blamed), but
ignorance of particulars, i.e. of the circumstances of the action and the
objects with which it is concerned. For it is on these that both pity and
pardon depend, since the person who is ignorant of any of these acts
involuntarily. Perhaps it is just as
well, therefore, to determine their nature and number. A man may be ignorant,
then, of who he is, what he is doing, what or whom he is acting on, and
sometimes also what (e.g. what instrument) he is doing it with, and to what end
(e.g. he may think his act will conduce to some one's safety), and how he is
doing it (e.g. whether gently or violently). Now of all of these no one could
be ignorant unless he were mad, and evidently also he could not be ignorant of
the agent; for how could he not know himself? But of what he is doing a man
might be ignorant, as for instance people say 'it slipped out of their mouths
as they were speaking', or 'they did not know it was a secret', as Aeschylus
said of the mysteries, or a man might say he 'let it go off when he merely
wanted to show its working', as the man did with the catapult. Again, one might
think one's son was an enemy, as Merope did, or that a pointed spear had a
button on it, or that a stone was pumicestone; or one might give a man a draught
to save him, and really kill him; or one might want to touch a man, as people
do in sparring, and really wound him. The ignorance may relate, then, to any of
these things, i.e. of the circumstances of the action, and the man who was
ignorant of any of these is thought to have acted involuntarily, and especially
if he was ignorant on the most important points; and these are thought to be
the circumstances of the action and its end. Further, the doing of an act that
is called involuntary in virtue of ignorance of this sort must be painful and
involve repentance. Since that which is
done under compulsion or by reason of ignorance is involuntary, the voluntary
would seem to be that of which the moving principle is in the agent himself, he
being aware of the particular circumstances of the action. Presumably acts done
by reason of anger or appetite are not rightly called involuntary. For in the
first place, on that showing none of the other animals will act voluntarily,
nor will children; and secondly, is it meant that we do not do voluntarily any
of the acts that are due to appetite or anger, or that we do the noble acts
voluntarily and the base acts involuntarily? Is not this absurd, when one and
the same thing is the cause? But it would surely be odd to describe as
involuntary the things one ought to desire; and we ought both to be angry at
certain things and to have an appetite for certain things, e.g. for health and
for learning. Also what is involuntary is thought to be painful, but what is in
accordance with appetite is thought to be pleasant. Again, what is the
difference in respect of involuntariness between errors committed upon
calculation and those committed in anger? Both are to be avoided, but the
irrational passions are thought not less human than reason is, and therefore
also the actions which proceed from anger or appetite are the man's actions. It
would be odd, then, to treat them as involuntary.
2
Both the voluntary and the involuntary having
been delimited, we must next discuss choice; for it is thought to be most
closely bound up with virtue and to discriminate characters better than actions
do. Choice, then, seems to be
voluntary, but not the same thing as the voluntary; the latter extends more widely.
For both children and the lower animals share in voluntary action, but not in
choice, and acts done on the spur of the moment we describe as voluntary, but
not as chosen. Those who say it is
appetite or anger or wish or a kind of opinion do not seem to be right. For
choice is not common to irrational creatures as well, but appetite and anger
are. Again, the incontinent man acts with appetite, but not with choice; while
the continent man on the contrary acts with choice, but not with appetite.
Again, appetite is contrary to choice, but not appetite to appetite. Again,
appetite relates to the pleasant and the painful, choice neither to the painful
nor to the pleasant. Still less is it
anger; for acts due to anger are thought to be less than any others objects of
choice. But neither is it wish, though
it seems near to it; for choice cannot relate to impossibles, and if any one
said he chose them he would be thought silly; but there may be a wish even for
impossibles, e.g. for immortality. And wish may relate to things that could in
no way be brought about by one's own efforts, e.g. that a particular actor or
athlete should win in a competition; but no one chooses such things, but only
the things that he thinks could be brought about by his own efforts. Again,
wish relates rather to the end, choice to the means; for instance, we wish to
be healthy, but we choose the acts which will make us healthy, and we wish to
be happy and say we do, but we cannot well say we choose to be so; for, in
general, choice seems to relate to the things that are in our own power. For this reason, too, it cannot be opinion;
for opinion is thought to relate to all kinds of things, no less to eternal
things and impossible things than to things in our own power; and it is distinguished
by its falsity or truth, not by its badness or goodness, while choice is
distinguished rather by these. Now with
opinion in general perhaps no one even says it is identical. But it is not
identical even with any kind of opinion; for by choosing what is good or bad we
are men of a certain character, which we are not by holding certain opinions.
And we choose to get or avoid something good or bad, but we have opinions about
what a thing is or whom it is good for or how it is good for him; we can hardly
be said to opine to get or avoid anything. And choice is praised for being
related to the right object rather than for being rightly related to it,
opinion for being truly related to its object. And we choose what we best know
to be good, but we opine what we do not quite know; and it is not the same
people that are thought to make the best choices and to have the best opinions,
but some are thought to have fairly good opinions, but by reason of vice to
choose what they should not. If opinion precedes choice or accompanies it, that
makes no difference; for it is not this that we are considering, but whether it
is identical with some kind of opinion.
What, then, or what kind of thing is it, since it is none of the things
we have mentioned? It seems to be voluntary, but not all that is voluntary to
be an object of choice. Is it, then, what has been decided on by previous
deliberation? At any rate choice involves a rational principle and thought.
Even the name seems to suggest that it is what is chosen before other things.
3
Do we deliberate about everything, and is
everything a possible subject of deliberation, or is deliberation impossible
about some things? We ought presumably to call not what a fool or a madman
would deliberate about, but what a sensible man would deliberate about, a subject
of deliberation. Now about eternal things no one deliberates, e.g. about the
material universe or the incommensurability of the diagonal and the side of a
square. But no more do we deliberate about the things that involve movement but
always happen in the same way, whether of necessity or by nature or from any
other cause, e.g. the solstices and the risings of the stars; nor about things
that happen now in one way, now in another, e.g. droughts and rains; nor about
chance events, like the finding of treasure. But we do not deliberate even
about all human affairs; for instance, no Spartan deliberates about the best
constitution for the Scythians. For none of these things can be brought about
by our own efforts. We deliberate about
things that are in our power and can be done; and these are in fact what is
left. For nature, necessity, and chance are thought to be causes, and also
reason and everything that depends on man. Now every class of men deliberates
about the things that can be done by their own efforts. And in the case of
exact and self-contained sciences there is no deliberation, e.g. about the
letters of the alphabet (for we have no doubt how they should be written); but
the things that are brought about by our own efforts, but not always in the same
way, are the things about which we deliberate, e.g. questions of medical
treatment or of money-making. And we do so more in the case of the art of
navigation than in that of gymnastics, inasmuch as it has been less exactly
worked out, and again about other things in the same ratio, and more also in
the case of the arts than in that of the sciences; for we have more doubt about
the former. Deliberation is concerned with things that happen in a certain way
for the most part, but in which the event is obscure, and with things in which
it is indeterminate. We call in others to aid us in deliberation on important
questions, distrusting ourselves as not being equal to deciding. We deliberate not about ends but about means.
For a doctor does not deliberate whether he shall heal, nor an orator whether
he shall persuade, nor a statesman whether he shall produce law and order, nor
does any one else deliberate about his end. They assume the end and consider
how and by what means it is to be attained; and if it seems to be produced by
several means they consider by which it is most easily and best produced, while
if it is achieved by one only they consider how it will be achieved by this and
by what means this will be achieved, till they come to the first cause, which in
the order of discovery is last. For the person who deliberates seems to
investigate and analyse in the way described as though he were analysing a
geometrical construction (not all investigation appears to be deliberation- for
instance mathematical investigations- but all deliberation is investigation),
and what is last in the order of analysis seems to be first in the order of
becoming. And if we come on an impossibility, we give up the search, e.g. if we
need money and this cannot be got; but if a thing appears possible we try to do
it. By 'possible' things I mean things that might be brought about by our own
efforts; and these in a sense include things that can be brought about by the
efforts of our friends, since the moving principle is in ourselves. The subject
of investigation is sometimes the instruments, sometimes the use of them; and
similarly in the other cases- sometimes the means, sometimes the mode of using
it or the means of bringing it about. It seems, then, as has been said, that
man is a moving principle of actions; now deliberation is about the things to
be done by the agent himself, and actions are for the sake of things other than
themselves. For the end cannot be a subject of deliberation, but only the
means; nor indeed can the particular facts be a subject of it, as whether this
is bread or has been baked as it should; for these are matters of perception.
If we are to be always deliberating, we shall have to go on to infinity. The same thing is deliberated upon and is
chosen, except that the object of choice is already determinate, since it is
that which has been decided upon as a result of deliberation that is the object
of choice. For every one ceases to inquire how he is to act when he has brought
the moving principle back to himself and to the ruling part of himself; for
this is what chooses. This is plain also from the ancient constitutions, which
Homer represented; for the kings announced their choices to the people. The
object of choice being one of the things in our own power which is desired
after deliberation, choice will be deliberate desire of things in our own
power; for when we have decided as a result of deliberation, we desire in
accordance with our deliberation. We
may take it, then, that we have described choice in outline, and stated the
nature of its objects and the fact that it is concerned with means.
4
That wish is for the end has already been
stated; some think it is for the good, others for the apparent good. Now those
who say that the good is the object of wish must admit in consequence that that
which the man who does not choose aright wishes for is not an object of wish
(for if it is to be so, it must also be good; but it was, if it so happened,
bad); while those who say the apparent good is the object of wish must admit
that there is no natural object of wish, but only what seems good to each man.
Now different things appear good to different people, and, if it so happens,
even contrary things. If these
consequences are unpleasing, are we to say that absolutely and in truth the
good is the object of wish, but for each person the apparent good; that that
which is in truth an object of wish is an object of wish to the good man, while
any chance thing may be so the bad man, as in the case of bodies also the things
that are in truth wholesome are wholesome for bodies which are in good
condition, while for those that are diseased other things are wholesome- or
bitter or sweet or hot or heavy, and so on; since the good man judges each
class of things rightly, and in each the truth appears to him? For each state
of character has its own ideas of the noble and the pleasant, and perhaps the
good man differs from others most by seeing the truth in each class of things,
being as it were the norm and measure of them. In most things the error seems
to be due to pleasure; for it appears a good when it is not. We therefore
choose the pleasant as a good, and avoid pain as an evil.
5
The end, then, being what we wish for, the
means what we deliberate about and choose, actions concerning means must be
according to choice and voluntary. Now the exercise of the virtues is concerned
with means. Therefore virtue also is in our own power, and so too vice. For
where it is in our power to act it is also in our power not to act, and vice
versa; so that, if to act, where this is noble, is in our power, not to act,
which will be base, will also be in our power, and if not to act, where this is
noble, is in our power, to act, which will be base, will also be in our power.
Now if it is in our power to do noble or base acts, and likewise in our power
not to do them, and this was what being good or bad meant, then it is in our
power to be virtuous or vicious. The
saying that 'no one is voluntarily wicked nor involuntarily happy' seems to be
partly false and partly true; for no one is involuntarily happy, but wickedness
is voluntary. Or else we shall have to dispute what has just been said, at any
rate, and deny that man is a moving principle or begetter of his actions as of
children. But if these facts are evident and we cannot refer actions to moving
principles other than those in ourselves, the acts whose moving principles are
in us must themselves also be in our power and voluntary. Witness seems to be borne to this both by
individuals in their private capacity and by legislators themselves; for these
punish and take vengeance on those who do wicked acts (unless they have acted
under compulsion or as a result of ignorance for which they are not themselves
responsible), while they honour those who do noble acts, as though they meant
to encourage the latter and deter the former. But no one is encouraged to do
the things that are neither in our power nor voluntary; it is assumed that
there is no gain in being persuaded not to be hot or in pain or hungry or the
like, since we shall experience these feelings none the less. Indeed, we punish
a man for his very ignorance, if he is thought responsible for the ignorance,
as when penalties are doubled in the case of drunkenness; for the moving principle
is in the man himself, since he had the power of not getting drunk and his
getting drunk was the cause of his ignorance. And we punish those who are
ignorant of anything in the laws that they ought to know and that is not
difficult, and so too in the case of anything else that they are thought to be
ignorant of through carelessness; we assume that it is in their power not to be
ignorant, since they have the power of taking care. But perhaps a man is the kind of man not to take care. Still they
are themselves by their slack lives responsible for becoming men of that kind,
and men make themselves responsible for being unjust or self-indulgent, in the
one case by cheating and in the other by spending their time in drinking bouts
and the like; for it is activities exercised on particular objects that make
the corresponding character. This is plain from the case of people training for
any contest or action; they practise the activity the whole time. Now not to
know that it is from the exercise of activities on particular objects that
states of character are produced is the mark of a thoroughly senseless person.
Again, it is irrational to suppose that a man who acts unjustly does not wish
to be unjust or a man who acts self-indulgently to be self-indulgent. But if
without being ignorant a man does the things which will make him unjust, he
will be unjust voluntarily. Yet it does not follow that if he wishes he will
cease to be unjust and will be just. For neither does the man who is ill become
well on those terms. We may suppose a case in which he is ill voluntarily,
through living incontinently and disobeying his doctors. In that case it was
then open to him not to be ill, but not now, when he has thrown away his
chance, just as when you have let a stone go it is too late to recover it; but
yet it was in your power to throw it, since the moving principle was in you.
So, too, to the unjust and to the self-indulgent man it was open at the
beginning not to become men of this kind, and so they are unjust and selfindulgent
voluntarily; but now that they have become so it is not possible for them not
to be so. But not only are the vices of
the soul voluntary, but those of the body also for some men, whom we
accordingly blame; while no one blames those who are ugly by nature, we blame
those who are so owing to want of exercise and care. So it is, too, with
respect to weakness and infirmity; no one would reproach a man blind from birth
or by disease or from a blow, but rather pity him, while every one would blame
a man who was blind from drunkenness or some other form of self-indulgence. Of
vices of the body, then, those in our own power are blamed, those not in our
power are not. And if this be so, in the other cases also the vices that are
blamed must be in our own power. Now
some one may say that all men desire the apparent good, but have no control
over the appearance, but the end appears to each man in a form answering to his
character. We reply that if each man is somehow responsible for his state of
mind, he will also be himself somehow responsible for the appearance; but if
not, no one is responsible for his own evildoing, but every one does evil acts
through ignorance of the end, thinking that by these he will get what is best,
and the aiming at the end is not self-chosen but one must be born with an eye,
as it were, by which to judge rightly and choose what is truly good, and he is
well endowed by nature who is well endowed with this. For it is what is
greatest and most noble, and what we cannot get or learn from another, but must
have just such as it was when given us at birth, and to be well and nobly
endowed with this will be perfect and true excellence of natural endowment. If
this is true, then, how will virtue be more voluntary than vice? To both men
alike, the good and the bad, the end appears and is fixed by nature or however
it may be, and it is by referring everything else to this that men do whatever
they do. Whether, then, it is not by
nature that the end appears to each man such as it does appear, but something
also depends on him, or the end is natural but because the good man adopts the
means voluntarily virtue is voluntary, vice also will be none the less
voluntary; for in the case of the bad man there is equally present that which
depends on himself in his actions even if not in his end. If, then, as is
asserted, the virtues are voluntary (for we are ourselves somehow partly
responsible for our states of character, and it is by being persons of a
certain kind that we assume the end to be so and so), the vices also will be
voluntary; for the same is true of them.
With regard to the virtues in general we have stated their genus in
outline, viz. that they are means and that they are states of character, and
that they tend, and by their own nature, to the doing of the acts by which they
are produced, and that they are in our power and voluntary, and act as the
right rule prescribes. But actions and states of character are not voluntary in
the same way; for we are masters of our actions from the beginning right to the
end, if we know the particular facts, but though we control the beginning of
our states of character the gradual progress is not obvious any more than it is
in illnesses; because it was in our power, however, to act in this way or not
in this way, therefore the states are voluntary. Let us take up the several virtues, however, and say which they
are and what sort of things they are concerned with and how they are concerned
with them; at the same time it will become plain how many they are. And first
let us speak of courage.
6
That it is a mean with regard to feelings of
fear and confidence has already been made evident; and plainly the things we
fear are terrible things, and these are, to speak without qualification, evils;
for which reason people even define fear as expectation of evil. Now we fear
all evils, e.g. disgrace, poverty, disease, friendlessness, death, but the
brave man is not thought to be concerned with all; for to fear some things is
even right and noble, and it is base not to fear them- e.g. disgrace; he who
fears this is good and modest, and he who does not is shameless. He is,
however, by some people called brave, by a transference of the word to a new
meaning; for he has in him something which is like the brave man, since the
brave man also is a fearless person. Poverty and disease we perhaps ought not
to fear, nor in general the things that do not proceed from vice and are not
due to a man himself. But not even the man who is fearless of these is brave.
Yet we apply the word to him also in virtue of a similarity; for some who in
the dangers of war are cowards are liberal and are confident in face of the
loss of money. Nor is a man a coward if he fears insult to his wife and
children or envy or anything of the kind; nor brave if he is confident when he
is about to be flogged. With what sort of terrible things, then, is the brave
man concerned? Surely with the greatest; for no one is more likely than he to
stand his ground against what is awe-inspiring. Now death is the most terrible
of all things; for it is the end, and nothing is thought to be any longer
either good or bad for the dead. But the brave man would not seem to be
concerned even with death in all circumstances, e.g. at sea or in disease. In
what circumstances, then? Surely in the noblest. Now such deaths are those in
battle; for these take place in the greatest and noblest danger. And these are
correspondingly honoured in city-states and at the courts of monarchs.
Properly, then, he will be called brave who is fearless in face of a noble
death, and of all emergencies that involve death; and the emergencies of war
are in the highest degree of this kind. Yet at sea also, and in disease, the
brave man is fearless, but not in the same way as the seaman; for he has given
up hope of safety, and is disliking the thought of death in this shape, while
they are hopeful because of their experience. At the same time, we show courage
in situations where there is the opportunity of showing prowess or where death
is noble; but in these forms of death neither of these conditions is
fulfilled.
7
What is terrible is not the same for all men;
but we say there are things terrible even beyond human strength. These, then,
are terrible to every one- at least to every sensible man; but the terrible
things that are not beyond human strength differ in magnitude and degree, and
so too do the things that inspire confidence. Now the brave man is as dauntless
as man may be. Therefore, while he will fear even the things that are not
beyond human strength, he will face them as he ought and as the rule directs,
for honour's sake; for this is the end of virtue. But it is possible to fear
these more, or less, and again to fear things that are not terrible as if they
were. Of the faults that are committed one consists in fearing what one should
not, another in fearing as we should not, another in fearing when we should
not, and so on; and so too with respect to the things that inspire confidence.
The man, then, who faces and who fears the right things and from the right
motive, in the right way and from the right time, and who feels confidence
under the corresponding conditions, is brave; for the brave man feels and acts
according to the merits of the case and in whatever way the rule directs. Now
the end of every activity is conformity to the corresponding state of
character. This is true, therefore, of the brave man as well as of others. But
courage is noble. Therefore the end also is noble; for each thing is defined by
its end. Therefore it is for a noble end that the brave man endures and acts as
courage directs. Of those who go to
excess he who exceeds in fearlessness has no name (we have said previously that
many states of character have no names), but he would be a sort of madman or
insensible person if he feared nothing, neither earthquakes nor the waves, as
they say the Celts do not; while the man who exceeds in confidence about what
really is terrible is rash. The rash man, however, is also thought to be
boastful and only a pretender to courage; at all events, as the brave man is
with regard to what is terrible, so the rash man wishes to appear; and so he
imitates him in situations where he can. Hence also most of them are a mixture
of rashness and cowardice; for, while in these situations they display
confidence, they do not hold their ground against what is really terrible. The
man who exceeds in fear is a coward; for he fears both what he ought not and as
he ought not, and all the similar characterizations attach to him. He is
lacking also in confidence; but he is more conspicuous for his excess of fear
in painful situations. The coward, then, is a despairing sort of person; for he
fears everything. The brave man, on the other hand, has the opposite
disposition; for confidence is the mark of a hopeful disposition. The coward,
the rash man, and the brave man, then, are concerned with the same objects but
are differently disposed towards them; for the first two exceed and fall short,
while the third holds the middle, which is the right, position; and rash men
are precipitate, and wish for dangers beforehand but draw back when they are in
them, while brave men are keen in the moment of action, but quiet
beforehand. As we have said, then,
courage is a mean with respect to things that inspire confidence or fear, in
the circumstances that have been stated; and it chooses or endures things
because it is noble to do so, or because it is base not to do so. But to die to
escape from poverty or love or anything painful is not the mark of a brave man,
but rather of a coward; for it is softness to fly from what is troublesome, and
such a man endures death not because it is noble but to fly from evil.
8
Courage, then, is something of this sort, but
the name is also applied to five other kinds.
First comes the courage of the citizen-soldier; for this is most like
true courage. Citizen-soldiers seem to face dangers because of the penalties
imposed by the laws and the reproaches they would otherwise incur, and because
of the honours they win by such action; and therefore those peoples seem to be
bravest among whom cowards are held in dishonour and brave men in honour. This
is the kind of courage that Homer depicts, e.g. in Diomede and in Hector: First will Polydamas be to heap reproach on
me then; and
For Hector one day 'mid the Trojans shall
utter his vaulting harangue: Afraid was Tydeides, and fled from my face.
This kind of courage is most like to that
which we described earlier, because it is due to virtue; for it is due to shame
and to desire of a noble object (i.e. honour) and avoidance of disgrace, which
is ignoble. One might rank in the same class even those who are compelled by
their rulers; but they are inferior, inasmuch as they do what they do not from
shame but from fear, and to avoid not what is disgraceful but what is painful;
for their masters compel them, as Hector does:
But if I shall spy any dastard that cowers
far from the fight, Vainly will such an
one hope to escape from the dogs.
And those who give them their posts, and beat
them if they retreat, do the same, and so do those who draw them up with
trenches or something of the sort behind them; all of these apply compulsion.
But one ought to be brave not under compulsion but because it is noble to be
so. (2) Experience with regard to
particular facts is also thought to be courage; this is indeed the reason why
Socrates thought courage was knowledge. Other people exhibit this quality in
other dangers, and professional soldiers exhibit it in the dangers of war; for
there seem to be many empty alarms in war, of which these have had the most
comprehensive experience; therefore they seem brave, because the others do not
know the nature of the facts. Again, their experience makes them most capable
in attack and in defence, since they can use their arms and have the kind that
are likely to be best both for attack and for defence; therefore they fight
like armed men against unarmed or like trained athletes against amateurs; for
in such contests too it is not the bravest men that fight best, but those who
are strongest and have their bodies in the best condition. Professional
soldiers turn cowards, however, when the danger puts too great a strain on them
and they are inferior in numbers and equipment; for they are the first to fly,
while citizen-forces die at their posts, as in fact happened at the temple of
Hermes. For to the latter flight is disgraceful and death is preferable to
safety on those terms; while the former from the very beginning faced the
danger on the assumption that they were stronger, and when they know the facts
they fly, fearing death more than disgrace; but the brave man is not that sort
of person. (3) Passion also is
sometimes reckoned as courage; those who act from passion, like wild beasts
rushing at those who have wounded them, are thought to be brave, because brave
men also are passionate; for passion above all things is eager to rush on
danger, and hence Homer's 'put strength into his passion' and 'aroused their
spirit and passion and 'hard he breathed panting' and 'his blood boiled'. For
all such expressions seem to indicate the stirring and onset of passion. Now
brave men act for honour's sake, but passion aids them; while wild beasts act
under the influence of pain; for they attack because they have been wounded or
because they are afraid, since if they are in a forest they do not come near
one. Thus they are not brave because, driven by pain and passion, they rush on
danger without foreseeing any of the perils, since at that rate even asses
would be brave when they are hungry; for blows will not drive them from their
food; and lust also makes adulterers do many daring things. (Those creatures
are not brave, then, which are driven on to danger by pain or passion.) The
'courage' that is due to passion seems to be the most natural, and to be
courage if choice and motive be added.
Men, then, as well as beasts, suffer pain when they are angry, and are
pleased when they exact their revenge; those who fight for these reasons, however,
are pugnacious but not brave; for they do not act for honour's sake nor as the
rule directs, but from strength of feeling; they have, however, something akin
to courage. (4) Nor are sanguine people
brave; for they are confident in danger only because they have conquered often
and against many foes. Yet they closely resemble brave men, because both are
confident; but brave men are confident for the reasons stated earlier, while
these are so because they think they are the strongest and can suffer nothing.
(Drunken men also behave in this way; they become sanguine). When their
adventures do not succeed, however, they run away; but it was the mark of a
brave man to face things that are, and seem, terrible for a man, because it is
noble to do so and disgraceful not to do so. Hence also it is thought the mark
of a braver man to be fearless and undisturbed in sudden alarms than to be so
in those that are foreseen; for it must have proceeded more from a state of
character, because less from preparation; acts that are foreseen may be chosen
by calculation and rule, but sudden actions must be in accordance with one's
state of character. (5) People who are
ignorant of the danger also appear brave, and they are not far removed from
those of a sanguine temper, but are inferior inasmuch as they have no self-reliance
while these have. Hence also the sanguine hold their ground for a time; but
those who have been deceived about the facts fly if they know or suspect that
these are different from what they supposed, as happened to the Argives when
they fell in with the Spartans and took them for Sicyonians. We have, then, described the character both
of brave men and of those who are thought to be brave.
9
Though courage is concerned with feelings of
confidence and of fear, it is not concerned with both alike, but more with the
things that inspire fear; for he who is undisturbed in face of these and bears
himself as he should towards these is more truly brave than the man who does so
towards the things that inspire confidence. It is for facing what is painful,
then, as has been said, that men are called brave. Hence also courage involves
pain, and is justly praised; for it is harder to face what is painful than to
abstain from what is pleasant. Yet the
end which courage sets before it would seem to be pleasant, but to be concealed
by the attending circumstances, as happens also in athletic contests; for the
end at which boxers aim is pleasant- the crown and the honours- but the blows
they take are distressing to flesh and blood, and painful, and so is their whole
exertion; and because the blows and the exertions are many the end, which is
but small, appears to have nothing pleasant in it. And so, if the case of
courage is similar, death and wounds will be painful to the brave man and
against his will, but he will face them because it is noble to do so or because
it is base not to do so. And the more he is possessed of virtue in its entirety
and the happier he is, the more he will be pained at the thought of death; for
life is best worth living for such a man, and he is knowingly losing the
greatest goods, and this is painful. But he is none the less brave, and perhaps
all the more so, because he chooses noble deeds of war at that cost. It is not
the case, then, with all the virtues that the exercise of them is pleasant,
except in so far as it reaches its end. But it is quite possible that the best
soldiers may be not men of this sort but those who are less brave but have no
other good; for these are ready to face danger, and they sell their life for
trifling gains. So much, then, for
courage; it is not difficult to grasp its nature in outline, at any rate, from
what has been said.
10
After courage let us speak of temperance; for
these seem to be the virtues of the irrational parts. We have said that
temperance is a mean with regard to pleasures (for it is less, and not in the
same way, concerned with pains); self-indulgence also is manifested in the same
sphere. Now, therefore, let us determine with what sort of pleasures they are
concerned. We may assume the distinction between bodily pleasures and those of
the soul, such as love of honour and love of learning; for the lover of each of
these delights in that of which he is a lover, the body being in no way
affected, but rather the mind; but men who are concerned with such pleasures
are called neither temperate nor self-indulgent. Nor, again, are those who are
concerned with the other pleasures that are not bodily; for those who are fond
of hearing and telling stories and who spend their days on anything that turns
up are called gossips, but not self-indulgent, nor are those who are pained at
the loss of money or of friends.
Temperance must be concerned with bodily pleasures, but not all even of
these; for those who delight in objects of vision, such as colours and shapes
and painting, are called neither temperate nor self-indulgent; yet it would
seem possible to delight even in these either as one should or to excess or to
a deficient degree. And so too is it
with objects of hearing; no one calls those who delight extravagantly in music
or acting self-indulgent, nor those who do so as they ought temperate. Nor do we apply these names to those who
delight in odour, unless it be incidentally; we do not call those self-indulgent
who delight in the odour of apples or roses or incense, but rather those who
delight in the odour of unguents or of dainty dishes; for self-indulgent people
delight in these because these remind them of the objects of their appetite.
And one may see even other people, when they are hungry, delighting in the
smell of food; but to delight in this kind of thing is the mark of the
self-indulgent man; for these are objects of appetite to him. Nor is there in animals other than man any
pleasure connected with these senses, except incidentally. For dogs do not
delight in the scent of hares, but in the eating of them, but the scent told
them the hares were there; nor does the lion delight in the lowing of the ox,
but in eating it; but he perceived by the lowing that it was near, and
therefore appears to delight in the lowing; and similarly he does not delight
because he sees 'a stag or a wild goat', but because he is going to make a meal
of it. Temperance and self-indulgence, however, are concerned with the kind of
pleasures that the other animals share in, which therefore appear slavish and
brutish; these are touch and taste. But even of taste they appear to make
little or no use; for the business of taste is the discriminating of flavours,
which is done by winetasters and people who season dishes; but they hardly take
pleasure in making these discriminations, or at least self-indulgent people do
not, but in the actual enjoyment, which in all cases comes through touch, both
in the case of food and in that of drink and in that of sexual intercourse. This
is why a certain gourmand prayed that his throat might become longer than a
crane's, implying that it was the contact that he took pleasure in. Thus the
sense with which self-indulgence is connected is the most widely shared of the
senses; and self-indulgence would seem to be justly a matter of reproach,
because it attaches to us not as men but as animals. To delight in such things,
then, and to love them above all others, is brutish. For even of the pleasures
of touch the most liberal have been eliminated, e.g. those produced in the
gymnasium by rubbing and by the consequent heat; for the contact characteristic
of the self-indulgent man does not affect the whole body but only certain
parts.
11
Of the appetites some seem to be common,
others to be peculiar to individuals and acquired; e.g. the appetite for food
is natural, since every one who is without it craves for food or drink, and
sometimes for both, and for love also (as Homer says) if he is young and lusty;
but not every one craves for this or that kind of nourishment or love, nor for
the same things. Hence such craving appears to be our very own. Yet it has of
course something natural about it; for different things are pleasant to
different kinds of people, and some things are more pleasant to every one than
chance objects. Now in the natural appetites few go wrong, and only in one
direction, that of excess; for to eat or drink whatever offers itself till one
is surfeited is to exceed the natural amount, since natural appetite is the
replenishment of one's deficiency. Hence these people are called belly-gods,
this implying that they fill their belly beyond what is right. It is people of
entirely slavish character that become like this. But with regard to the
pleasures peculiar to individuals many people go wrong and in many ways. For
while the people who are 'fond of so and so' are so called because they delight
either in the wrong things, or more than most people do, or in the wrong way,
the self-indulgent exceed in all three ways; they both delight in some things
that they ought not to delight in (since they are hateful), and if one ought to
delight in some of the things they delight in, they do so more than one ought
and than most men do. Plainly, then,
excess with regard to pleasures is self-indulgence and is culpable; with regard
to pains one is not, as in the case of courage, called temperate for facing
them or self-indulgent for not doing so, but the selfindulgent man is so called
because he is pained more than he ought at not getting pleasant things (even
his pain being caused by pleasure), and the temperate man is so called because
he is not pained at the absence of what is pleasant and at his abstinence from
it. The self-indulgent man, then, craves
for all pleasant things or those that are most pleasant, and is led by his
appetite to choose these at the cost of everything else; hence he is pained
both when he fails to get them and when he is merely craving for them (for
appetite involves pain); but it seems absurd to be pained for the sake of
pleasure. People who fall short with regard to pleasures and delight in them
less than they should are hardly found; for such insensibility is not human.
Even the other animals distinguish different kinds of food and enjoy some and
not others; and if there is any one who finds nothing pleasant and nothing more
attractive than anything else, he must be something quite different from a man;
this sort of person has not received a name because he hardly occurs. The
temperate man occupies a middle position with regard to these objects. For he
neither enjoys the things that the self-indulgent man enjoys most-but rather
dislikes them-nor in general the things that he should not, nor anything of
this sort to excess, nor does he feel pain or craving when they are absent, or
does so only to a moderate degree, and not more than he should, nor when he
should not, and so on; but the things that, being pleasant, make for health or
for good condition, he will desire moderately and as he should, and also other
pleasant things if they are not hindrances to these ends, or contrary to what
is noble, or beyond his means. For he who neglects these conditions loves such
pleasures more than they are worth, but the temperate man is not that sort of
person, but the sort of person that the right rule prescribes.
12
Self-indulgence is more like a voluntary
state than cowardice. For the former is actuated by pleasure, the latter by
pain, of which the one is to be chosen and the other to be avoided; and pain
upsets and destroys the nature of the person who feels it, while pleasure does
nothing of the sort. Therefore self-indulgence is more voluntary. Hence also it
is more a matter of reproach; for it is easier to become accustomed to its
objects, since there are many things of this sort in life, and the process of
habituation to them is free from danger, while with terrible objects the
reverse is the case. But cowardice would seem to be voluntary in a different
degree from its particular manifestations; for it is itself painless, but in
these we are upset by pain, so that we even throw down our arms and disgrace
ourselves in other ways; hence our acts are even thought to be done under
compulsion. For the self-indulgent man, on the other hand, the particular acts
are voluntary (for he does them with craving and desire), but the whole state
is less so; for no one craves to be self-indulgent. The name self-indulgence is applied also to childish faults; for
they bear a certain resemblance to what we have been considering. Which is
called after which, makes no difference to our present purpose; plainly,
however, the later is called after the earlier. The transference of the name
seems not a bad one; for that which desires what is base and which develops
quickly ought to be kept in a chastened condition, and these characteristics
belong above all to appetite and to the child, since children in fact live at
the beck and call of appetite, and it is in them that the desire for what is
pleasant is strongest. If, then, it is not going to be obedient and subject to
the ruling principle, it will go to great lengths; for in an irrational being
the desire for pleasure is insatiable even if it tries every source of
gratification, and the exercise of appetite increases its innate force, and if
appetites are strong and violent they even expel the power of calculation.
Hence they should be moderate and few, and should in no way oppose the rational
principle-and this is what we call an obedient and chastened state-and as the
child should live according to the direction of his tutor, so the appetitive
element should live according to rational principle. Hence the appetitive
element in a temperate man should harmonize with the rational principle; for
the noble is the mark at which both aim, and the temperate man craves for the
things be ought, as he ought, as when he ought; and when he ought; and this is
what rational principle directs. Here
we conclude our account of temperance.
BOOK IV
1
LET us speak next of liberality. It seems to
be the mean with regard to wealth; for the liberal man is praised not in
respect of military matters, nor of those in respect of which the temrate man
is praised, nor of judicial decisions, but with regard to the giving and taking
of wealth, and especially in respect of giving. Now by 'wealth' we mean all the
things whose value is measured by money. Further, prodigality and meanness are
excesses and defects with regard to wealth; and meanness we always impute to
those who care more than they ought for wealth, but we sometimes apply the word
'prodigality' in a complex sense; for we call those men prodigals who are
incontinent and spend money on self-indulgence. Hence also they are thought the
poorest characters; for they combine more vices than one. Therefore the
application of the word to them is not its proper use; for a 'prodigal' means a
man who has a single evil quality, that of wasting his substance; since a
prodigal is one who is being ruined by his own fault, and the wasting of
substance is thought to be a sort of ruining of oneself, life being held to
depend on possession of substance.
This, then, is the sense in which we take the word 'prodigality'. Now
the things that have a use may be used either well or badly; and riches is a
useful thing; and everything is used best by the man who has the virtue
concerned with it; riches, therefore, will be used best by the man who has the
virtue concerned with wealth; and this is the liberal man. Now spending and
giving seem to be the using of wealth; taking and keeping rather the possession
of it. Hence it is more the mark of the liberal man to give to the right people
than to take from the right sources and not to take from the wrong. For it is
more characteristic of virtue to do good than to have good done to one, and
more characteristic to do what is noble than not to do what is base; and it is
not hard to see that giving implies doing good and doing what is noble, and
taking implies having good done to one or not acting basely. And gratitude is
felt towards him who gives, not towards him who does not take, and praise also
is bestowed more on him. It is easier, also, not to take than to give; for men
are apter to give away their own too little than to take what is another's.
Givers, too, are called liberal; but those who do not take are not praised for
liberality but rather for justice; while those who take are hardly praised at
all. And the liberal are almost the most loved of all virtuous characters,
since they are useful; and this depends on their giving. Now virtuous actions are noble and done for
the sake of the noble. Therefore the liberal man, like other virtuous men, will
give for the sake of the noble, and rightly; for he will give to the right
people, the right amounts, and at the right time, with all the other qualifications
that accompany right giving; and that too with pleasure or without pain; for
that which is virtuous is pleasant or free from pain-least of all will it be
painful. But he who gives to the wrong people or not for the sake of the noble
but for some other cause, will be called not liberal but by some other name.
Nor is he liberal who gives with pain; for he would prefer the wealth to the
noble act, and this is not characteristic of a liberal man. But no more will
the liberal man take from wrong sources; for such taking is not characteristic
of the man who sets no store by wealth. Nor will he be a ready asker; for it is
not characteristic of a man who confers benefits to accept them lightly. But he
will take from the right sources, e.g. from his own possessions, not as
something noble but as a necessity, that he may have something to give. Nor
will he neglect his own property, since he wishes by means of this to help
others. And he will refrain from giving to anybody and everybody, that he may
have something to give to the right people, at the right time, and where it is
noble to do so. It is highly characteristic of a liberal man also to go to
excess in giving, so that he leaves too little for himself; for it is the
nature of a liberal man not to look to himself. The term 'liberality' is used
relatively to a man's substance; for liberality resides not in the multitude of
the gifts but in the state of character of the giver, and this is relative to
the giver's substance. There is therefore nothing to prevent the man who gives
less from being the more liberal man, if he has less to give those are thought
to be more liberal who have not made their wealth but inherited it; for in the
first place they have no experience of want, and secondly all men are fonder of
their own productions, as are parents and poets. It is not easy for the liberal
man to be rich, since he is not apt either at taking or at keeping, but at
giving away, and does not value wealth for its own sake but as a means to
giving. Hence comes the charge that is brought against fortune, that those who
deserve riches most get it least. But it is not unreasonable that it should
turn out so; for he cannot have wealth, any more than anything else, if he does
not take pains to have it. Yet he will not give to the wrong people nor at the
wrong time, and so on; for he would no longer be acting in accordance with
liberality, and if he spent on these objects he would have nothing to spend on
the right objects. For, as has been said, he is liberal who spends according to
his substance and on the right objects; and he who exceeds is prodigal. Hence
we do not call despots prodigal; for it is thought not easy for them to give
and spend beyond the amount of their possessions. Liberality, then, being a
mean with regard to giving and taking of wealth, the liberal man will both give
and spend the right amounts and on the right objects, alike in small things and
in great, and that with pleasure; he will also take the right amounts and from
the right sources. For, the virtue being a mean with regard to both, he will do
both as he ought; since this sort of taking accompanies proper giving, and that
which is not of this sort is contrary to it, and accordingly the giving and
taking that accompany each other are present together in the same man, while
the contrary kinds evidently are not. But if he happens to spend in a manner
contrary to what is right and noble, he will be pained, but moderately and as
he ought; for it is the mark of virtue both to be pleased and to be pained at
the right objects and in the right way. Further, the liberal man is easy to
deal with in money matters; for he can be got the better of, since he sets no
store by money, and is more annoyed if he has not spent something that he ought
than pained if he has spent something that he ought not, and does not agree
with the saying of Simonides. The
prodigal errs in these respects also; for he is neither pleased nor pained at
the right things or in the right way; this will be more evident as we go on. We
have said that prodigality and meanness are excesses and deficiencies, and in
two things, in giving and in taking; for we include spending under giving. Now
prodigality exceeds in giving and not taking, while meanness falls short in
giving, and exceeds in taking, except in small things. The characteristics of prodigality are not
often combined; for it is not easy to give to all if you take from none;
private persons soon exhaust their substance with giving, and it is to these
that the name of prodigals is applied- though a man of this sort would seem to
be in no small degree better than a mean man. For he is easily cured both by
age and by poverty, and thus he may move towards the middle state. For he has
the characteristics of the liberal man, since he both gives and refrains from
taking, though he does neither of these in the right manner or well. Therefore
if he were brought to do so by habituation or in some other way, he would be
liberal; for he will then give to the right people, and will not take from the
wrong sources. This is why he is thought to have not a bad character; it is not
the mark of a wicked or ignoble man to go to excess in giving and not taking,
but only of a foolish one. The man who is prodigal in this way is thought much
better than the mean man both for the aforesaid reasons and because he benefits
many while the other benefits no one, not even himself. But most prodigal people, as has been said,
also take from the wrong sources, and are in this respect mean. They become apt
to take because they wish to spend and cannot do this easily; for their
possessions soon run short. Thus they are forced to provide means from some
other source. At the same time, because they care nothing for honour, they take
recklessly and from any source; for they have an appetite for giving, and they
do not mind how or from what source. Hence also their giving is not liberal;
for it is not noble, nor does it aim at nobility, nor is it done in the right
way; sometimes they make rich those who should be poor, and will give nothing
to people of respectable character, and much to flatterers or those who provide
them with some other pleasure. Hence also most of them are self-indulgent; for
they spend lightly and waste money on their indulgences, and incline towards
pleasures because they do not live with a view to what is noble. The prodigal man, then, turns into what we
have described if he is left untutored, but if he is treated with care he will
arrive at the intermediate and right state. But meanness is both incurable (for
old age and every disability is thought to make men mean) and more innate in
men than prodigality; for most men are fonder of getting money than of giving.
It also extends widely, and is multiform, since there seem to be many kinds of
meanness. For it consists in two
things, deficiency in giving and excess in taking, and is not found complete in
all men but is sometimes divided; some men go to excess in taking, others fall
short in giving. Those who are called by such names as 'miserly', 'close', 'stingy',
all fall short in giving, but do not covet the possessions of others nor wish
to get them. In some this is due to a sort of honesty and avoidance of what is
disgraceful (for some seem, or at least profess, to hoard their money for this
reason, that they may not some day be forced to do something disgraceful; to
this class belong the cheeseparer and every one of the sort; he is so called
from his excess of unwillingness to give anything); while others again keep
their hands off the property of others from fear, on the ground that it is not
easy, if one takes the property of others oneself, to avoid having one's own
taken by them; they are therefore content neither to take nor to give. Others again exceed in respect of taking by
taking anything and from any source, e.g. those who ply sordid trades, pimps
and all such people, and those who lend small sums and at high rates. For all
of these take more than they ought and from wrong sources. What is common to
them is evidently sordid love of gain; they all put up with a bad name for the
sake of gain, and little gain at that. For those who make great gains but from
wrong sources, and not the right gains, e.g. despots when they sack cities and
spoil temples, we do not call mean but rather wicked, impious, and unjust. But
the gamester and the footpad (and the highwayman) belong to the class of the
mean, since they have a sordid love of gain. For it is for gain that both of
them ply their craft and endure the disgrace of it, and the one faces the
greatest dangers for the sake of the booty, while the other makes gain from his
friends, to whom he ought to be giving. Both, then, since they are willing to
make gain from wrong sources, are sordid lovers of gain; therefore all such
forms of taking are mean. And it is natural
that meanness is described as the contrary of liberality; for not only is it a
greater evil than prodigality, but men err more often in this direction than in
the way of prodigality as we have described it. So much, then, for liberality and the opposed vices.
2
It would seem proper to discuss magnificence
next. For this also seems to be a virtue concerned with wealth; but it does not
like liberality extend to all the actions that are concerned with wealth, but
only to those that involve expenditure; and in these it surpasses liberality in
scale. For, as the name itself suggests, it is a fitting expenditure involving
largeness of scale. But the scale is relative; for the expense of equipping a
trireme is not the same as that of heading a sacred embassy. It is what is
fitting, then, in relation to the agent, and to the circumstances and the
object. The man who in small or middling things spends according to the merits
of the case is not called magnificent (e.g. the man who can say 'many a gift I
gave the wanderer'), but only the man who does so in great things. For the
magnificent man is liberal, but the liberal man is not necessarily magnificent.
The deficiency of this state of character is called niggardliness, the excess
vulgarity, lack of taste, and the like, which do not go to excess in the amount
spent on right objects, but by showy expenditure in the wrong circumstances and
the wrong manner; we shall speak of these vices later. The magnificent man is like an artist; for
he can see what is fitting and spend large sums tastefully. For, as we said at
the begining, a state of character is determined by its activities and by its
objects. Now the expenses of the magnificent man are large and fitting. Such,
therefore, are also his results; for thus there will be a great expenditure and
one that is fitting to its result. Therefore the result should be worthy of the
expense, and the expense should be worthy of the result, or should even exceed
it. And the magnificent man will spend such sums for honour's sake; for this is
common to the virtues. And further he will do so gladly and lavishly; for nice
calculation is a niggardly thing. And he will consider how the result can be
made most beautiful and most becoming rather than for how much it can be
produced and how it can be produced most cheaply. It is necessary, then, that
the magnificent man be also liberal. For the liberal man also will spend what
he ought and as he ought; and it is in these matters that the greatness implied
in the name of the magnificent man-his bigness, as it were-is manifested, since
liberality is concerned with these matters; and at an equal expense he will
produce a more magnificent work of art. For a possession and a work of art have
not the same excellence. The most valuable possession is that which is worth
most, e.g. gold, but the most valuable work of art is that which is great and
beautiful (for the contemplation of such a work inspires admiration, and so
does magnificence); and a work has an excellence-viz. magnificence-which involves
magnitude. Magnificence is an attribute of expenditures of the kind which we
call honourable, e.g. those connected with the gods-votive offerings,
buildings, and sacrifices-and similarly with any form of religious worship, and
all those that are proper objects of public-spirited ambition, as when people
think they ought to equip a chorus or a trireme, or entertain the city, in a
brilliant way. But in all cases, as has been said, we have regard to the agent
as well and ask who he is and what means he has; for the expenditure should be
worthy of his means, and suit not only the result but also the producer. Hence
a poor man cannot be magnificent, since he has not the means with which to
spend large sums fittingly; and he who tries is a fool, since he spends beyond
what can be expected of him and what is proper, but it is right expenditure
that is virtuous. But great expenditure is becoming to those who have suitable
means to start with, acquired by their own efforts or from ancestors or
connexions, and to people of high birth or reputation, and so on; for all these
things bring with them greatness and prestige. Primarily, then, the magnificent
man is of this sort, and magnificence is shown in expenditures of this sort, as
has been said; for these are the greatest and most honourable. Of private
occasions of expenditure the most suitable are those that take place once for
all, e.g. a wedding or anything of the kind, or anything that interests the
whole city or the people of position in it, and also the receiving of foreign
guests and the sending of them on their way, and gifts and counter-gifts; for
the magnificent man spends not on himself but on public objects, and gifts bear
some resemblance to votive offerings. A magnificent man will also furnish his house
suitably to his wealth (for even a house is a sort of public ornament), and
will spend by preference on those works that are lasting (for these are the
most beautiful), and on every class of things he will spend what is becoming;
for the same things are not suitable for gods and for men, nor in a temple and
in a tomb. And since each expenditure may be great of its kind, and what is
most magnificent absolutely is great expenditure on a great object, but what is
magnificent here is what is great in these circumstances, and greatness in the
work differs from greatness in the expense (for the most beautiful ball or
bottle is magnificent as a gift to a child, but the price of it is small and
mean),-therefore it is characteristic of the magnificent man, whatever kind of
result he is producing, to produce it magnificently (for such a result is not
easily surpassed) and to make it worthy of the expenditure. Such, then, is the magnificent man; the man
who goes to excess and is vulgar exceeds, as has been said, by spending beyond
what is right. For on small objects of expenditure he spends much and displays
a tasteless showiness; e.g. he gives a club dinner on the scale of a wedding
banquet, and when he provides the chorus for a comedy he brings them on to the
stage in purple, as they do at Megara. And all such things he will do not for
honour's sake but to show off his wealth, and because he thinks he is admired
for these things, and where he ought to spend much he spends little and where
little, much. The niggardly man on the other hand will fall short in
everything, and after spending the greatest sums will spoil the beauty of the
result for a trifle, and whatever he is doing he will hesitate and consider how
he may spend least, and lament even that, and think he is doing everything on a
bigger scale than he ought. These
states of character, then, are vices; yet they do not bring disgrace because
they are neither harmful to one's neighbour nor very unseemly.
3
Pride seems even from its name to be
concerned with great things; what sort of great things, is the first question
we must try to answer. It makes no difference whether we consider the state of
character or the man characterized by it. Now the man is thought to be proud
who thinks himself worthy of great things, being worthy of them; for he who
does so beyond his deserts is a fool, but no virtuous man is foolish or silly.
The proud man, then, is the man we have described. For he who is worthy of
little and thinks himself worthy of little is temperate, but not proud; for
pride implies greatness, as beauty implies a goodsized body, and little people
may be neat and well-proportioned but cannot be beautiful. On the other hand,
he who thinks himself worthy of great things, being unworthy of them, is vain;
though not every one who thinks himself worthy of more than he really is worthy
of in vain. The man who thinks himself worthy of worthy of less than he is
really worthy of is unduly humble, whether his deserts be great or moderate, or
his deserts be small but his claims yet smaller. And the man whose deserts are
great would seem most unduly humble; for what would he have done if they had
been less? The proud man, then, is an extreme in respect of the greatness of
his claims, but a mean in respect of the rightness of them; for he claims what
is accordance with his merits, while the others go to excess or fall
short. If, then, he deserves and claims
great things, and above all the great things, he will be concerned with one
thing in particular. Desert is relative to external goods; and the greatest of
these, we should say, is that which we render to the gods, and which people of
position most aim at, and which is the prize appointed for the noblest deeds;
and this is honour; that is surely the greatest of external goods. Honours and
dishonours, therefore, are the objects with respect to which the proud man is
as he should be. And even apart from argument it is with honour that proud men
appear to be concerned; for it is honour that they chiefly claim, but in accordance
with their deserts. The unduly humble man falls short both in comparison with
his own merits and in comparison with the proud man's claims. The vain man goes
to excess in comparison with his own merits, but does not exceed the proud
man's claims. Now the proud man, since
he deserves most, must be good in the highest degree; for the better man always
deserves more, and the best man most. Therefore the truly proud man must be
good. And greatness in every virtue would seem to be characteristic of a proud
man. And it would be most unbecoming for a proud man to fly from danger,
swinging his arms by his sides, or to wrong another; for to what end should he
do disgraceful acts, he to whom nothing is great? If we consider him point by
point we shall see the utter absurdity of a proud man who is not good. Nor,
again, would he be worthy of honour if he were bad; for honour is the prize of
virtue, and it is to the good that it is rendered. Pride, then, seems to be a
sort of crown of the virtues; for it makes them greater, and it is not found
without them. Therefore it is hard to be truly proud; for it is impossible
without nobility and goodness of character. It is chiefly with honours and
dishonours, then, that the proud man is concerned; and at honours that are great
and conferred by good men he will be moderately Pleased, thinking that he is
coming by his own or even less than his own; for there can be no honour that is
worthy of perfect virtue, yet he will at any rate accept it since they have
nothing greater to bestow on him; but honour from casual people and on trifling
grounds he will utterly despise, since it is not this that he deserves, and
dishonour too, since in his case it cannot be just. In the first place, then,
as has been said, the proud man is concerned with honours; yet he will also
bear himself with moderation towards wealth and power and all good or evil
fortune, whatever may befall him, and will be neither over-joyed by good
fortune nor over-pained by evil. For not even towards honour does he bear
himself as if it were a very great thing. Power and wealth are desirable for
the sake of honour (at least those who have them wish to get honour by means of
them); and for him to whom even honour is a little thing the others must be so
too. Hence proud men are thought to be disdainful. The goods of fortune also are thought to contribute towards
pride. For men who are well-born are thought worthy of honour, and so are those
who enjoy power or wealth; for they are in a superior position, and everything
that has a superiority in something good is held in greater honour. Hence even
such things make men prouder; for they are honoured by some for having them;
but in truth the good man alone is to be honoured; he, however, who has both
advantages is thought the more worthy of honour. But those who without virtue
have such goods are neither justified in making great claims nor entitled to
the name of 'proud'; for these things imply perfect virtue. Disdainful and
insolent, however, even those who have such goods become. For without virtue it
is not easy to bear gracefully the goods of fortune; and, being unable to bear
them, and thinking themselves superior to others, they despise others and
themselves do what they please. They imitate the proud man without being like
him, and this they do where they can; so they do not act virtuously, but they
do despise others. For the proud man despises justly (since he thinks truly),
but the many do so at random. He does
not run into trifling dangers, nor is he fond of danger, because he honours few
things; but he will face great dangers, and when he is in danger he is
unsparing of his life, knowing that there are conditions on which life is not
worth having. And he is the sort of man to confer benefits, but he is ashamed
of receiving them; for the one is the mark of a superior, the other of an
inferior. And he is apt to confer greater benefits in return; for thus the
original benefactor besides being paid will incur a debt to him, and will be
the gainer by the transaction. They seem also to remember any service they have
done, but not those they have received (for he who receives a service is
inferior to him who has done it, but the proud man wishes to be superior), and
to hear of the former with pleasure, of the latter with displeasure; this, it
seems, is why Thetis did not mention to Zeus the services she had done him, and
why the Spartans did not recount their services to the Athenians, but those
they had received. It is a mark of the proud man also to ask for nothing or
scarcely anything, but to give help readily, and to be dignified towards people
who enjoy high position and good fortune, but unassuming towards those of the
middle class; for it is a difficult and lofty thing to be superior to the
former, but easy to be so to the latter, and a lofty bearing over the former is
no mark of ill-breeding, but among humble people it is as vulgar as a display
of strength against the weak. Again, it is characteristic of the proud man not
to aim at the things commonly held in honour, or the things in which others
excel; to be sluggish and to hold back except where great honour or a great
work is at stake, and to be a man of few deeds, but of great and notable ones.
He must also be open in his hate and in his love (for to conceal one's feelings,
i.e. to care less for truth than for what people will think, is a coward's
part), and must speak and act openly; for he is free of speech because he is
contemptuous, and he is given to telling the truth, except when he speaks in
irony to the vulgar. He must be unable to make his life revolve round another,
unless it be a friend; for this is slavish, and for this reason all flatterers
are servile and people lacking in self-respect are flatterers. Nor is he given
to admiration; for nothing to him is great. Nor is he mindful of wrongs; for it
is not the part of a proud man to have a long memory, especially for wrongs,
but rather to overlook them. Nor is he a gossip; for he will speak neither
about himself nor about another, since he cares not to be praised nor for
others to be blamed; nor again is he given to praise; and for the same reason
he is not an evil-speaker, even about his enemies, except from haughtiness.
With regard to necessary or small matters he is least of all me given to
lamentation or the asking of favours; for it is the part of one who takes such
matters seriously to behave so with respect to them. He is one who will possess
beautiful and profitless things rather than profitable and useful ones; for
this is more proper to a character that suffices to itself. Further, a slow step is thought proper to
the proud man, a deep voice, and a level utterance; for the man who takes few
things seriously is not likely to be hurried, nor the man who thinks nothing
great to be excited, while a shrill voice and a rapid gait are the results of
hurry and excitement. Such, then, is
the proud man; the man who falls short of him is unduly humble, and the man who
goes beyond him is vain. Now even these are not thought to be bad (for they are
not malicious), but only mistaken. For the unduly humble man, being worthy of
good things, robs himself of what he deserves, and to have something bad about
him from the fact that he does not think himself worthy of good things, and
seems also not to know himself; else he would have desired the things he was
worthy of, since these were good. Yet such people are not thought to be fools,
but rather unduly retiring. Such a reputation, however, seems actually to make
them worse; for each class of people aims at what corresponds to its worth, and
these people stand back even from noble actions and undertakings, deeming
themselves unworthy, and from external goods no less. Vain people, on the other
hand, are fools and ignorant of themselves, and that manifestly; for, not being
worthy of them, they attempt honourable undertakings, and then are found out;
and tetadorn themselves with clothing and outward show and such things, and
wish their strokes of good fortune to be made public, and speak about them as
if they would be honoured for them. But undue humility is more opposed to pride
than vanity is; for it is both commoner and worse. Pride, then, is concerned with honour on the grand scale, as has
been said.
4
There seems to be in the sphere of honour
also, as was said in our first remarks on the subject, a virtue which would
appear to be related to pride as liberality is to magnificence. For neither of
these has anything to do with the grand scale, but both dispose us as is right
with regard to middling and unimportant objects; as in getting and giving of
wealth there is a mean and an excess and defect, so too honour may be desired
more than is right, or less, or from the right sources and in the right way. We
blame both the ambitious man as am at honour more than is right and from wrong
sources, and the unambitious man as not willing to be honoured even for noble
reasons. But sometimes we praise the ambitious man as being manly and a lover
of what is noble, and the unambitious man as being moderate and
self-controlled, as we said in our first treatment of the subject. Evidently,
since 'fond of such and such an object' has more than one meaning, we do not
assign the term 'ambition' or 'love of honour' always to the same thing, but
when we praise the quality we think of the man who loves honour more than most
people, and when we blame it we think of him who loves it more than is right.
The mean being without a name, the extremes seem to dispute for its place as
though that were vacant by default. But where there is excess and defect, there
is also an intermediate; now men desire honour both more than they should and
less; therefore it is possible also to do so as one should; at all events this
is the state of character that is praised, being an unnamed mean in respect of
honour. Relatively to ambition it seems to be unambitiousness, and relatively
to unambitiousness it seems to be ambition, while relatively to both severally
it seems in a sense to be both together. This appears to be true of the other
virtues also. But in this case the extremes seem to be contradictories because
the mean has not received a name.
5
Good temper is a mean with respect to anger;
the middle state being unnamed, and the extremes almost without a name as well,
we place good temper in the middle position, though it inclines towards the
deficiency, which is without a name. The excess might called a sort of
'irascibility'. For the passion is anger, while its causes are many and
diverse. The man who is angry at the
right things and with the right people, and, further, as he ought, when he
ought, and as long as he ought, is praised. This will be the good-tempered man,
then, since good temper is praised. For the good-tempered man tends to be
unperturbed and not to be led by passion, but to be angry in the manner, at the
things, and for the length of time, that the rule dictates; but he is thought
to err rather in the direction of deficiency; for the good-tempered man is not
revengeful, but rather tends to make allowances. The deficiency, whether it is a sort of 'inirascibility' or
whatever it is, is blamed. For those who are not angry at the things they
should be angry at are thought to be fools, and so are those who are not angry
in the right way, at the right time, or with the right persons; for such a man
is thought not to feel things nor to be pained by them, and, since he does not
get angry, he is thought unlikely to defend himself; and to endure being
insulted and put up with insult to one's friends is slavish. The excess can be manifested in all the
points that have been named (for one can be angry with the wrong persons, at
the wrong things, more than is right, too quickly, or too long); yet all are
not found in the same person. Indeed they could not; for evil destroys even
itself, and if it is complete becomes unbearable. Now hot-tempered people get
angry quickly and with the wrong persons and at the wrong things and more than
is right, but their anger ceases quickly-which is the best point about them.
This happens to them because they do not restrain their anger but retaliate
openly owing to their quickness of temper, and then their anger ceases. By
reason of excess choleric people are quick-tempered and ready to be angry with
everything and on every occasion; whence their name. Sulky people are hard to appease,
and retain their anger long; for they repress their passion. But it ceases when
they retaliate; for revenge relieves them of their anger, producing in them
pleasure instead of pain. If this does not happen they retain their burden; for
owing to its not being obvious no one even reasons with them, and to digest
one's anger in oneself takes time. Such people are most troublesome to
themselves and to their dearest friends. We call had-tempered those who are
angry at the wrong things, more than is right, and longer, and cannot be
appeased until they inflict vengeance or punishment. To good temper we oppose the excess rather than the defect; for
not only is it commoner since revenge is the more human), but bad-tempered
people are worse to live with. What we
have said in our earlier treatment of the subject is plain also from what we
are now saying; viz. that it is not easy to define how, with whom, at what, and
how long one should be angry, and at what point right action ceases and wrong
begins. For the man who strays a little from the path, either towards the more
or towards the less, is not blamed; since sometimes we praise those who exhibit
the deficiency, and call them good-tempered, and sometimes we call angry people
manly, as being capable of ruling. How far, therefore, and how a man must stray
before he becomes blameworthy, it is not easy to state in words; for the
decision depends on the particular facts and on perception. But so much at
least is plain, that the middle state is praiseworthy- that in virtue of which
we are angry with the right people, at the right things, in the right way, and
so on, while the excesses and defects are blameworthy- slightly so if they are
present in a low degree, more if in a higher degree, and very much if in a high
degree. Evidently, then, we must cling to the middle state.- Enough of the
states relative to anger.
6
In gatherings of men, in social life and the
interchange of words and deeds, some men are thought to be obsequious, viz.
those who to give pleasure praise everything and never oppose, but think it
their duty 'to give no pain to the people they meet'; while those who, on the
contrary, oppose everything and care not a whit about giving pain are called
churlish and contentious. That the states we have named are culpable is plain
enough, and that the middle state is laudable- that in virtue of which a man
will put up with, and will resent, the right things and in the right way; but
no name has been assigned to it, though it most resembles friendship. For the
man who corresponds to this middle state is very much what, with affection
added, we call a good friend. But the state in question differs from friendship
in that it implies no passion or affection for one's associates; since it is
not by reason of loving or hating that such a man takes everything in the right
way, but by being a man of a certain kind. For he will behave so alike towards
those he knows and those he does not know, towards intimates and those who are
not so, except that in each of these cases he will behave as is befitting; for
it is not proper to have the same care for intimates and for strangers, nor
again is it the same conditions that make it right to give pain to them. Now we
have said generally that he will associate with people in the right way; but it
is by reference to what is honourable and expedient that he will aim at not
giving pain or at contributing pleasure. For he seems to be concerned with the
pleasures and pains of social life; and wherever it is not honourable, or is
harmful, for him to contribute pleasure, he will refuse, and will choose rather
to give pain; also if his acquiescence in another's action would bring
disgrace, and that in a high degree, or injury, on that other, while his
opposition brings a little pain, he will not acquiesce but will decline. He
will associate differently with people in high station and with ordinary
people, with closer and more distant acquaintances, and so too with regard to
all other differences, rendering to each class what is befitting, and while for
its own sake he chooses to contribute pleasure, and avoids the giving of pain,
he will be guided by the consequences, if these are greater, i.e. honour and
expediency. For the sake of a great future pleasure, too, he will inflict small
pains. The man who attains the mean,
then, is such as we have described, but has not received a name; of those who
contribute pleasure, the man who aims at being pleasant with no ulterior object
is obsequious, but the man who does so in order that he may get some advantage
in the direction of money or the things that money buys is a flatterer; while
the man who quarrels with everything is, as has been said, churlish and
contentious. And the extremes seem to be contradictory to each other because
the mean is without a name.
7
The mean opposed to boastfulness is found in
almost the same sphere; and this also is without a name. It will be no bad plan
to describe these states as well; for we shall both know the facts about
character better if we go through them in detail, and we shall be convinced
that the virtues are means if we see this to be so in all cases. In the field
of social life those who make the giving of pleasure or pain their object in
associating with others have been described; let us now describe those who
pursue truth or falsehood alike in words and deeds and in the claims they put
forward. The boastful man, then, is thought to be apt to claim the things that
bring glory, when he has not got them, or to claim more of them than he has,
and the mock-modest man on the other hand to disclaim what he has or belittle
it, while the man who observes the mean is one who calls a thing by its own
name, being truthful both in life and in word, owning to what he has, and
neither more nor less. Now each of these courses may be adopted either with or
without an object. But each man speaks and acts and lives in accordance with
his character, if he is not acting for some ulterior object. And falsehood is
in itself mean and culpable, and truth noble and worthy of praise. Thus the
truthful man is another case of a man who, being in the mean, is worthy of
praise, and both forms of untruthful man are culpable, and particularly the
boastful man. Let us discuss them both,
but first of all the truthful man. We are not speaking of the man who keeps
faith in his agreements, i.e. in the things that pertain to justice or
injustice (for this would belong to another virtue), but the man who in the
matters in which nothing of this sort is at stake is true both in word and in
life because his character is such. But such a man would seem to be as a matter
of fact equitable. For the man who loves truth, and is truthful where nothing
is at stake, will still more be truthful where something is at stake; he will
avoid falsehood as something base, seeing that he avoided it even for its own
sake; and such a man is worthy of praise. He inclines rather to understate the
truth; for this seems in better taste because exaggerations are wearisome. He who claims more than he has with no
ulterior object is a contemptible sort of fellow (otherwise he would not have
delighted in falsehood), but seems futile rather than bad; but if he does it
for an object, he who does it for the sake of reputation or honour is (for a
boaster) not very much to be blamed, but he who does it for money, or the
things that lead to money, is an uglier character (it is not the capacity that
makes the boaster, but the purpose; for it is in virtue of his state of
character and by being a man of a certain kind that he is boaster); as one man
is a liar because he enjoys the lie itself, and another because he desires
reputation or gain. Now those who boast for the sake of reputation claim such
qualities as will praise or congratulation, but those whose object is gain
claim qualities which are of value to one's neighbours and one's lack of which
is not easily detected, e.g. the powers of a seer, a sage, or a physician. For
this reason it is such things as these that most people claim and boast about;
for in them the above-mentioned qualities are found. Mock-modest people, who understate things, seem more attractive
in character; for they are thought to speak not for gain but to avoid parade;
and here too it is qualities which bring reputation that they disclaim, as
Socrates used to do. Those who disclaim trifling and obvious qualities are
called humbugs and are more contemptible; and sometimes this seems to be
boastfulness, like the Spartan dress; for both excess and great deficiency are
boastful. But those who use understatement with moderation and understate about
matters that do not very much force themselves on our notice seem attractive.
And it is the boaster that seems to be opposed to the truthful man; for he is
the worse character.
8
Since life includes rest as well as activity,
and in this is included leisure and amusement, there seems here also to be a
kind of intercourse which is tasteful; there is such a thing as saying
and
again listening to- what one should and as one should. The kind of people one
is speaking or listening to will also make a difference. Evidently here also
there is both an excess and a deficiency as compared with the mean. Those who
carry humour to excess are thought to be vulgar buffoons, striving after humour
at all costs, and aiming rather at raising a laugh than at saying what is
becoming and at avoiding pain to the object of their fun; while those who can
neither make a joke themselves nor put up with those who do are thought to be
boorish and unpolished. But those who joke in a tasteful way are called
ready-witted, which implies a sort of readiness to turn this way and that; for
such sallies are thought to be movements of the character, and as bodies are
discriminated by their movements, so too are characters. The ridiculous side of
things is not far to seek, however, and most people delight more than they
should in amusement and in jestinly. and so even buffoons are called
ready-witted because they are found attractive; but that they differ from the
ready-witted man, and to no small extent, is clear from what has been
said. To the middle state belongs also
tact; it is the mark of a tactful man to say and listen to such things as befit
a good and well-bred man; for there are some things that it befits such a man
to say and to hear by way of jest, and the well-bred man's jesting differs from
that of a vulgar man, and the joking of an educated man from that of an
uneducated. One may see this even from the old and the new comedies; to the
authors of the former indecency of language was amusing, to those of the latter
innuendo is more so; and these differ in no small degree in respect of
propriety. Now should we define the man who jokes well by his saying what is
not unbecoming to a well-bred man, or by his not giving pain, or even giving
delight, to the hearer? Or is the latter definition, at any rate, itself
indefinite, since different things are hateful or pleasant to different people?
The kind of jokes he will listen to will be the same; for the kind he can put up
with are also the kind he seems to make. There are, then, jokes he will not
make; for the jest is a sort of abuse, and there are things that lawgivers
forbid us to abuse; and they should, perhaps, have forbidden us even to make a
jest of such. The refined and well-bred man, therefore, will be as we have
described, being as it were a law to himself.
Such, then, is the man who observes the mean, whether he be called
tactful or ready-witted. The buffoon, on the other hand, is the slave of his
sense of humour, and spares neither himself nor others if he can raise a laugh,
and says things none of which a man of refinement would say, and to some of
which he would not even listen. The boor, again, is useless for such social
intercourse; for he contributes nothing and finds fault with everything. But
relaxation and amusement are thought to be a necessary element in life. The means in life that have been described,
then, are three in number, and are all concerned with an interchange of words
and deeds of some kind. They differ, however, in that one is concerned with
truth; and the other two with pleasantness. Of those concerned with pleasure,
one is displayed in jests, the other in the general social intercourse of
life.
9
Shame should not be described as a virtue;
for it is more like a feeling than a state of character. It is defined, at any
rate, as a kind of fear of dishonour, and produces an effect similar to that
produced by fear of danger; for people who feel disgraced blush, and those who
fear death turn pale. Both, therefore, seem to be in a sense bodily conditions,
which is thought to be characteristic of feeling rather than of a state of
character. The feeling is not becoming
to every age, but only to youth. For we think young people should be prone to
the feeling of shame because they live by feeling and therefore commit many
errors, but are restrained by shame; and we praise young people who are prone
to this feeling, but an older person no one would praise for being prone to the
sense of disgrace, since we think he should not do anything that need cause
this sense. For the sense of disgrace is not even characteristic of a good man,
since it is consequent on bad actions (for such actions should not be done; and
if some actions are disgraceful in very truth and others only according to
common opinion, this makes no difference; for neither class of actions should
be done, so that no disgrace should be felt); and it is a mark of a bad man
even to be such as to do any disgraceful action. To be so constituted as to
feel disgraced if one does such an action, and for this reason to think oneself
good, is absurd; for it is for voluntary actions that shame is felt, and the
good man will never voluntarily do bad actions. But shame may be said to be
conditionally a good thing; if a good man does such actions, he will feel
disgraced; but the virtues are not subject to such a qualification. And if
shamelessness-not to be ashamed of doing base actions-is bad, that does not
make it good to be ashamed of doing such actions. Continence too is not virtue,
but a mixed sort of state; this will be shown later. Now, however, let us
discuss justice.
BOOK V
1
WITH regards to justice and injustice we must
(1) consider what kind of actions they are concerned with, (2) what sort of
mean justice is, and (3) between what extremes the just act is intermediate.
Our investigation shall follow the same course as the preceding
discussions. We see that all men mean
by justice that kind of state of character which makes people disposed to do
what is just and makes them act justly and wish for what is just; and similarly
by injustice that state which makes them act unjustly and wish for what is
unjust. Let us too, then, lay this down as a general basis. For the same is not
true of the sciences and the faculties as of states of character. A faculty or
a science which is one and the same is held to relate to contrary objects, but
a state of character which is one of two contraries does not produce the
contrary results; e.g. as a result of health we do not do what is the opposite
of healthy, but only what is healthy; for we say a man walks healthily, when he
walks as a healthy man would. Now often
one contrary state is recognized from its contrary, and often states are
recognized from the subjects that exhibit them; for (A) if good condition is
known, bad condition also becomes known, and (B) good condition is known from
the things that are in good condition, and they from it. If good condition is
firmness of flesh, it is necessary both that bad condition should be flabbiness
of flesh and that the wholesome should be that which causes firmness in flesh.
And it follows for the most part that if one contrary is ambiguous the other
also will be ambiguous; e.g. if 'just' is so, that 'unjust' will be so
too. Now 'justice' and 'injustice' seem
to be ambiguous, but because their different meanings approach near to one
another the ambiguity escapes notice and is not obvious as it is,
comparatively, when the meanings are far apart, e.g. (for here the difference
in outward form is great) as the ambiguity in the use of kleis for the
collar-bone of an animal and for that with which we lock a door. Let us take as
a starting-point, then, the various meanings of 'an unjust man'. Both the
lawless man and the grasping and unfair man are thought to be unjust, so that
evidently both the law-abiding and the fair man will be just. The just, then,
is the lawful and the fair, the unjust the unlawful and the unfair. Since the unjust man is grasping, he must be
concerned with goods-not all goods, but those with which prosperity and
adversity have to do, which taken absolutely are always good, but for a
particular person are not always good. Now men pray for and pursue these
things; but they should not, but should pray that the things that are good
absolutely may also be good for them, and should choose the things that are
good for them. The unjust man does not always choose the greater, but also the
less-in the case of things bad absolutely; but because the lesser evil is
itself thought to be in a sense good, and graspingness is directed at the good,
therefore he is thought to be grasping. And he is unfair; for this contains and
is common to both. Since the lawless
man was seen to be unjust and the law-abiding man just, evidently all lawful
acts are in a sense just acts; for the acts laid down by the legislative art
are lawful, and each of these, we say, is just. Now the laws in their
enactments on all subjects aim at the common advantage either of all or of the
best or of those who hold power, or something of the sort; so that in one sense
we call those acts just that tend to produce and preserve happiness and its
components for the political society. And the law bids us do both the acts of a
brave man (e.g. not to desert our post nor take to flight nor throw away our
arms), and those of a temperate man (e.g. not to commit adultery nor to gratify
one's lust), and those of a good-tempered man (e.g. not to strike another nor
to speak evil), and similarly with regard to the other virtues and forms of
wickedness, commanding some acts and forbidding others; and the rightly-framed
law does this rightly, and the hastily conceived one less well. This form of
justice, then, is complete virtue, but not absolutely, but in relation to our
neighbour. And therefore justice is often thought to be the greatest of
virtues, and 'neither evening nor morning star' is so wonderful; and
proverbially 'in justice is every virtue comprehended'. And it is complete
virtue in its fullest sense, because it is the actual exercise of complete
virtue. It is complete because he who possesses it can exercise his virtue not
only in himself but towards his neighbour also; for many men can exercise
virtue in their own affairs, but not in their relations to their neighbour.
This is why the saying of Bias is thought to be true, that 'rule will show the
man'; for a ruler is necessarily in relation to other men and a member of a
society. For this same reason justice, alone of the virtues, is thought to be
'another's good', because it is related to our neighbour; for it does what is
advantageous to another, either a ruler or a copartner. Now the worst man is he
who exercises his wickedness both towards himself and towards his friends, and
the best man is not he who exercises his virtue towards himself but he who
exercises it towards another; for this is a difficult task. Justice in this
sense, then, is not part of virtue but virtue entire, nor is the contrary
injustice a part of vice but vice entire. What the difference is between virtue
and justice in this sense is plain from what we have said; they are the same
but their essence is not the same; what, as a relation to one's neighbour, is
justice is, as a certain kind of state without qualification, virtue.
2
But at all events what we are investigating
is the justice which is a part of virtue; for there is a justice of this kind,
as we maintain. Similarly it is with injustice in the particular sense that we
are concerned. That there is such a
thing is indicated by the fact that while the man who exhibits in action the
other forms of wickedness acts wrongly indeed, but not graspingly (e.g. the man
who throws away his shield through cowardice or speaks harshly through bad
temper or fails to help a friend with money through meanness), when a man acts
graspingly he often exhibits none of these vices,-no, nor all together, but
certainly wickedness of some kind (for we blame him) and injustice. There is,
then, another kind of injustice which is a part of injustice in the wide sense,
and a use of the word 'unjust' which answers to a part of what is unjust in the
wide sense of 'contrary to the law'. Again if one man commits adultery for the
sake of gain and makes money by it, while another does so at the bidding of
appetite though he loses money and is penalized for it, the latter would be
held to be self-indulgent rather than grasping, but the former is unjust, but
not self-indulgent; evidently, therefore, he is unjust by reason of his making
gain by his act. Again, all other unjust acts are ascribed invariably to some
particular kind of wickedness, e.g. adultery to self-indulgence, the desertion
of a comrade in battle to cowardice, physical violence to anger; but if a man
makes gain, his action is ascribed to no form of wickedness but injustice.
Evidently, therefore, there is apart from injustice in the wide sense another,
'particular', injustice which shares the name and nature of the first, because
its definition falls within the same genus; for the significance of both consists
in a relation to one's neighbour, but the one is concerned with honour or money
or safety-or that which includes all these, if we had a single name for it-and
its motive is the pleasure that arises from gain; while the other is concerned
with all the objects with which the good man is concerned. It is clear, then, that there is more than
one kind of justice, and that there is one which is distinct from virtue
entire; we must try to grasp its genus and differentia. The unjust has been divided into the
unlawful and the unfair, and the just into the lawful and the fair. To the
unlawful answers the afore-mentioned sense of injustice. But since unfair and
the unlawful are not the same, but are different as a part is from its whole
(for all that is unfair is unlawful, but not all that is unlawful is unfair),
the unjust and injustice in the sense of the unfair are not the same as but
different from the former kind, as part from whole; for injustice in this sense
is a part of injustice in the wide sense, and similarly justice in the one
sense of justice in the other. Therefore we must speak also about particular
justice and particular and similarly about the just and the unjust. The
justice, then, which answers to the whole of virtue, and the corresponding injustice,
one being the exercise of virtue as a whole, and the other that of vice as a
whole, towards one's neighbour, we may leave on one side. And how the meanings
of 'just' and 'unjust' which answer to these are to be distinguished is
evident; for practically the majority of the acts commanded by the law are
those which are prescribed from the point of view of virtue taken as a whole;
for the law bids us practise every virtue and forbids us to practise any vice.
And the things that tend to produce virtue taken as a whole are those of the
acts prescribed by the law which have been prescribed with a view to education
for the common good. But with regard to the education of the individual as
such, which makes him without qualification a good man, we must determine later
whether this is the function of the political art or of another; for perhaps it
is not the same to be a good man and a good citizen of any state taken at
random. Of particular justice and that
which is just in the corresponding sense, (A) one kind is that which is
manifested in distributions of honour or money or the other things that fall to
be divided among those who have a share in the constitution (for in these it is
possible for one man to have a share either unequal or equal to that of another),
and (B) one is that which plays a rectifying part in transactions between man
and man. Of this there are two divisions; of transactions (1) some are
voluntary and (2) others involuntary- voluntary such transactions as sale,
purchase, loan for consumption, pledging, loan for use, depositing, letting
(they are called voluntary because the origin of these transactions is
voluntary), while of the involuntary (a) some are clandestine, such as theft,
adultery, poisoning, procuring, enticement of slaves, assassination, false
witness, and (b) others are violent, such as assault, imprisonment, murder,
robbery with violence, mutilation, abuse, insult.
3
(A) We have shown that both the unjust man
and the unjust act are unfair or unequal; now it is clear that there is also an
intermediate between the two unequals involved in either case. And this is the
equal; for in any kind of action in which there's a more and a less there is
also what is equal. If, then, the unjust is unequal, just is equal, as all men suppose
it to be, even apart from argument. And since the equal is intermediate, the
just will be an intermediate. Now equality implies at least two things. The
just, then, must be both intermediate and equal and relative (i.e. for certain
persons). And since the equall intermediate it must be between certain things
(which are respectively greater and less); equal, it involves two things; qua
just, it is for certain people. The just, therefore, involves at least four
terms; for the persons for whom it is in fact just are two, and the things in
which it is manifested, the objects distributed, are two. And the same equality
will exist between the persons and between the things concerned; for as the
latter the things concerned-are related, so are the former; if they are not
equal, they will not have what is equal, but this is the origin of quarrels and
complaints-when either equals have and are awarded unequal shares, or unequals
equal shares. Further, this is plain from the fact that awards should be
'according to merit'; for all men agree that what is just in distribution must
be according to merit in some sense, though they do not all specify the same
sort of merit, but democrats identify it with the status of freeman, supporters
of oligarchy with wealth (or with noble birth), and supporters of aristocracy
with excellence. The just, then, is a
species of the proportionate (proportion being not a property only of the kind
of number which consists of abstract units, but of number in general). For
proportion is equality of ratios, and involves four terms at least (that
discrete proportion involves four terms is plain, but so does continuous
proportion, for it uses one term as two and mentions it twice; e.g. 'as the
line A is to the line B, so is the line B to the line C'; the line B, then, has
been mentioned twice, so that if the line B be assumed twice, the proportional
terms will be four); and the just, too, involves at least four terms, and the
ratio between one pair is the same as that between the other pair; for there is
a similar distinction between the persons and between the things. As the term
A, then, is to B, so will C be to D, and therefore, alternando, as A is to C, B
will be to D. Therefore also the whole is in the same ratio to the whole; and
this coupling the distribution effects, and, if the terms are so combined,
effects justly. The conjunction, then, of the term A with C and of B with D is
what is just in distribution, and this species of the just is intermediate, and
the unjust is what violates the proportion; for the proportional is
intermediate, and the just is proportional. (Mathematicians call this kind of
proportion geometrical; for it is in geometrical proportion that it follows
that the whole is to the whole as either part is to the corresponding part.)
This proportion is not continuous; for we cannot get a single term standing for
a person and a thing. This, then, is
what the just is-the proportional; the unjust is what violates the proportion.
Hence one term becomes too great, the other too small, as indeed happens in
practice; for the man who acts unjustly has too much, and the man who is
unjustly treated too little, of what is good. In the case of evil the reverse
is true; for the lesser evil is reckoned a good in comparison with the greater
evil, since the lesser evil is rather to be chosen than the greater, and what
is worthy of choice is good, and what is worthier of choice a greater
good. This, then, is one species of the
just.
4
(B) The remaining one is the rectificatory,
which arises in connexion with transactions both voluntary and involuntary.
This form of the just has a different specific character from the former. For
the justice which distributes common possessions is always in accordance with
the kind of proportion mentioned above (for in the case also in which the
distribution is made from the common funds of a partnership it will be
according to the same ratio which the funds put into the business by the
partners bear to one another); and the injustice opposed to this kind of
justice is that which violates the proportion. But the justice in transactions
between man and man is a sort of equality indeed, and the injustice a sort of
inequality; not according to that kind of proportion, however, but according to
arithmetical proportion. For it makes no difference whether a good man has
defrauded a bad man or a bad man a good one, nor whether it is a good or a bad
man that has committed adultery; the law looks only to the distinctive
character of the injury, and treats the parties as equal, if one is in the
wrong and the other is being wronged, and if one inflicted injury and the other
has received it. Therefore, this kind of injustice being an inequality, the
judge tries to equalize it; for in the case also in which one has received and
the other has inflicted a wound, or one has slain and the other been slain, the
suffering and the action have been unequally distributed; but the judge tries
to equalize by means of the penalty, taking away from the gain of the
assailant. For the term 'gain' is applied generally to such cases, even if it
be not a term appropriate to certain cases, e.g. to the person who inflicts a
woundand 'loss' to the sufferer; at all events when the suffering has been
estimated, the one is called loss and the other gain. Therefore the equal is
intermediate between the greater and the less, but the gain and the loss are
respectively greater and less in contrary ways; more of the good and less of
the evil are gain, and the contrary is loss; intermediate between them is, as
we saw, equal, which we say is just; therefore corrective justice will be the
intermediate between loss and gain. This is why, when people dispute, they take
refuge in the judge; and to go to the judge is to go to justice; for the nature
of the judge is to be a sort of animate justice; and they seek the judge as an
intermediate, and in some states they call judges mediators, on the assumption
that if they get what is intermediate they will get what is just. The just,
then, is an intermediate, since the judge is so. Now the judge restores
equality; it is as though there were a line divided into unequal parts, and he
took away that by which the greater segment exceeds the half, and added it to
the smaller segment. And when the whole has been equally divided, then they say
they have 'their own'-i.e. when they have got what is equal. The equal is
intermediate between the greater and the lesser line according to arithmetical
proportion. It is for this reason also that it is called just (sikaion), because
it is a division into two equal parts (sicha), just as if one were to call it
sichaion; and the judge (sikastes) is one who bisects (sichastes). For when
something is subtracted from one of two equals and added to the other, the
other is in excess by these two; since if what was taken from the one had not
been added to the other, the latter would have been in excess by one only. It
therefore exceeds the intermediate by one, and the intermediate exceeds by one
that from which something was taken. By this, then, we shall recognize both
what we must subtract from that which has more, and what we must add to that
which has less; we must add to the latter that by which the intermediate
exceeds it, and subtract from the greatest that by which it exceeds the intermediate.
Let the lines AA', BB', CC' be equal to one another; from the line AA' let the
segment AE have been subtracted, and to the line CC' let the segment CD have
been added, so that the whole line DCC' exceeds the line EA' by the segment CD
and the segment CF; therefore it exceeds the line BB' by the segment CD. (See
diagram.) These names, both loss and
gain, have come from voluntary exchange; for to have more than one's own is
called gaining, and to have less than one's original share is called losing, e.g.
in buying and selling and in all other matters in which the law has left people
free to make their own terms; but when they get neither more nor less but just
what belongs to themselves, they say that they have their own and that they
neither lose nor gain. Therefore the
just is intermediate between a sort of gain and a sort of loss, viz. those
which are involuntary; it consists in having an equal amount before and after
the transaction.
5
Some think that reciprocity is without
qualification just, as the Pythagoreans said; for they defined justice without
qualification as reciprocity. Now 'reciprocity' fits neither distributive nor
rectificatory justice-yet people want even the justice of Rhadamanthus to mean
this:
Should a man suffer what he did, right
justice would be done
-for
in many cases reciprocity and rectificatory justice are not in accord; e.g. (1)
if an official has inflicted a wound, he should not be wounded in return, and
if some one has wounded an official, he ought not to be wounded only but
punished in addition. Further (2) there is a great difference between a
voluntary and an involuntary act. But in associations for exchange this sort of
justice does hold men together-reciprocity in accordance with a proportion and
not on the basis of precisely equal return. For it is by proportionate requital
that the city holds together. Men seek to return either evil for evil-and if
they cana not do so, think their position mere slavery-or good for good-and if
they cannot do so there is no exchange, but it is by exchange that they hold
together. This is why they give a prominent place to the temple of the
Graces-to promote the requital of services; for this is characteristic of
grace-we should serve in return one who has shown grace to us, and should
another time take the initiative in showing it. Now proportionate return is secured by cross-conjunction. Let A
be a builder, B a shoemaker, C a house, D a shoe. The builder, then, must get
from the shoemaker the latter's work, and must himself give him in return his
own. If, then, first there is proportionate equality of goods, and then
reciprocal action takes place, the result we mention will be effected. If not,
the bargain is not equal, and does not hold; for there is nothing to prevent
the work of the one being better than that of the other; they must therefore be
equated. (And this is true of the other arts also; for they would have been
destroyed if what the patient suffered had not been just what the agent did,
and of the same amount and kind.) For it is not two doctors that associate for
exchange, but a doctor and a farmer, or in general people who are different and
unequal; but these must be equated. This is why all things that are exchanged
must be somehow comparable. It is for this end that money has been introduced,
and it becomes in a sense an intermediate; for it measures all things, and
therefore the excess and the defect-how many shoes are equal to a house or to a
given amount of food. The number of shoes exchanged for a house (or for a given
amount of food) must therefore correspond to the ratio of builder to shoemaker.
For if this be not so, there will be no exchange and no intercourse. And this
proportion will not be effected unless the goods are somehow equal. All goods
must therefore be measured by some one thing, as we said before. Now this unit
is in truth demand, which holds all things together (for if men did not need
one another's goods at all, or did not need them equally, there would be either
no exchange or not the same exchange); but money has become by convention a
sort of representative of demand; and this is why it has the name 'money'
(nomisma)-because it exists not by nature but by law (nomos) and it is in our
power to change it and make it useless. There will, then, be reciprocity when
the terms have been equated so that as farmer is to shoemaker, the amount of
the shoemaker's work is to that of the farmer's work for which it exchanges.
But we must not bring them into a figure of proportion when they have already
exchanged (otherwise one extreme will have both excesses), but when they still
have their own goods. Thus they are equals and associates just because this
equality can be effected in their case. Let A be a farmer, C food, B a
shoemaker, D his product equated to C. If it had not been possible for
reciprocity to be thus effected, there would have been no association of the
parties. That demand holds things together as a single unit is shown by the
fact that when men do not need one another, i.e. when neither needs the other
or one does not need the other, they do not exchange, as we do when some one
wants what one has oneself, e.g. when people permit the exportation of corn in
exchange for wine. This equation therefore must be established. And for the
future exchange-that if we do not need a thing now we shall have it if ever we
do need it-money is as it were our surety; for it must be possible for us to
get what we want by bringing the money. Now the same thing happens to money
itself as to goods-it is not always worth the same; yet it tends to be
steadier. This is why all goods must have a price set on them; for then there
will always be exchange, and if so, association of man with man. Money, then,
acting as a measure, makes goods commensurate and equates them; for neither
would there have been association if there were not exchange, nor exchange if
there were not equality, nor equality if there were not commensurability. Now
in truth it is impossible that things differing so much should become
commensurate, but with reference to demand they may become so sufficiently.
There must, then, be a unit, and that fixed by agreement (for which reason it
is called money); for it is this that makes all things commensurate, since all
things are measured by money. Let A be a house, B ten minae, C a bed. A is half
of B, if the house is worth five minae or equal to them; the bed, C, is a tenth
of B; it is plain, then, how many beds are equal to a house, viz. five. That
exchange took place thus before there was money is plain; for it makes no
difference whether it is five beds that exchange for a house, or the money
value of five beds. We have now defined
the unjust and the just. These having been marked off from each other, it is
plain that just action is intermediate between acting unjustly and being
unjustly treated; for the one is to have too much and the other to have too
little. Justice is a kind of mean, but not in the same way as the other
virtues, but because it relates to an intermediate amount, while injustice
relates to the extremes. And justice is that in virtue of which the just man is
said to be a doer, by choice, of that which is just, and one who will
distribute either between himself and another or between two others not so as
to give more of what is desirable to himself and less to his neighbour (and
conversely with what is harmful), but so as to give what is equal in accordance
with proportion; and similarly in distributing between two other persons.
Injustice on the other hand is similarly related to the unjust, which is excess
and defect, contrary to proportion, of the useful or hurtful. For which reason
injustice is excess and defect, viz. because it is productive of excess and
defect-in one's own case excess of what is in its own nature useful and defect
of what is hurtful, while in the case of others it is as a whole like what it
is in one's own case, but proportion may be violated in either direction. In
the unjust act to have too little is to be unjustly treated; to have too much
is to act unjustly. Let this be taken
as our account of the nature of justice and injustice, and similarly of the
just and the unjust in general.
6
Since acting unjustly does not necessarily
imply being unjust, we must ask what sort of unjust acts imply that the doer is
unjust with respect to each type of injustice, e.g. a thief, an adulterer, or a
brigand. Surely the answer does not turn on the difference between these types.
For a man might even lie with a woman knowing who she was, but the origin of
his might be not deliberate choice but passion. He acts unjustly, then, but is
not unjust; e.g. a man is not a thief, yet he stole, nor an adulterer, yet he
committed adultery; and similarly in all other cases. Now we have previously stated how the reciprocal is related to
the just; but we must not forget that what we are looking for is not only what
is just without qualification but also political justice. This is found among
men who share their life with a view to selfsufficiency, men who are free and
either proportionately or arithmetically equal, so that between those who do
not fulfil this condition there is no political justice but justice in a
special sense and by analogy. For justice exists only between men whose mutual
relations are governed by law; and law exists for men between whom there is
injustice; for legal justice is the discrimination of the just and the unjust.
And between men between whom there is injustice there is also unjust action
(though there is not injustice between all between whom there is unjust
action), and this is assigning too much to oneself of things good in themselves
and too little of things evil in themselves. This is why we do not allow a man
to rule, but rational principle, because a man behaves thus in his own
interests and becomes a tyrant. The magistrate on the other hand is the
guardian of justice, and, if of justice, then of equality also. And since he is
assumed to have no more than his share, if he is just (for he does not assign
to himself more of what is good in itself, unless such a share is proportional
to his merits-so that it is for others that he labours, and it is for this
reason that men, as we stated previously, say that justice is 'another's
good'), therefore a reward must be given him, and this is honour and privilege;
but those for whom such things are not enough become tyrants. The justice of a master and that of a father
are not the same as the justice of citizens, though they are like it; for there
can be no injustice in the unqualified sense towards thing that are one's own,
but a man's chattel, and his child until it reaches a certain age and sets up
for itself, are as it were part of himself, and no one chooses to hurt himself
(for which reason there can be no injustice towards oneself). Therefore the
justice or injustice of citizens is not manifested in these relations; for it
was as we saw according to law, and between people naturally subject to law,
and these as we saw' are people who have an equal share in ruling and being
ruled. Hence justice can more truly be manifested towards a wife than towards
children and chattels, for the former is household justice; but even this is
different from political justice.
7
Of political justice part is natural, part
legal, natural, that which everywhere has the same force and does not exist by
people's thinking this or that; legal, that which is originally indifferent,
but when it has been laid down is not indifferent, e.g. that a prisoner's
ransom shall be a mina, or that a goat and not two sheep shall be sacrificed,
and again all the laws that are passed for particular cases, e.g. that
sacrifice shall be made in honour of Brasidas, and the provisions of decrees.
Now some think that all justice is of this sort, because that which is by
nature is unchangeable and has everywhere the same force (as fire burns both
here and in Persia), while they see change in the things recognized as just.
This, however, is not true in this unqualified way, but is true in a sense; or
rather, with the gods it is perhaps not true at all, while with us there is
something that is just even by nature, yet all of it is changeable; but still
some is by nature, some not by nature. It is evident which sort of thing, among
things capable of being otherwise, is by nature, and which is not but is legal
and conventional, assuming that both are equally changeable. And in all other
things the same distinction will apply; by nature the right hand is stronger,
yet it is possible that all men should come to be ambidextrous. The things
which are just by virtue of convention and expediency are like measures; for
wine and corn measures are not everywhere equal, but larger in wholesale and
smaller in retail markets. Similarly, the things which are just not by nature
but by human enactment are not everywhere the same, since constitutions also
are not the same, though there is but one which is everywhere by nature the
best. Of things just and lawful each is related as the universal to its
particulars; for the things that are done are many, but of them each is one,
since it is universal. There is a
difference between the act of injustice and what is unjust, and between the act
of justice and what is just; for a thing is unjust by nature or by enactment;
and this very thing, when it has been done, is an act of injustice, but before it
is done is not yet that but is unjust. So, too, with an act of justice (though
the general term is rather 'just action', and 'act of justice' is applied to
the correction of the act of injustice).
Each of these must later be examined separately with regard to the
nature and number of its species and the nature of the things with which it is
concerned.
8
Acts just and unjust being as we have
described them, a man acts unjustly or justly whenever he does such acts
voluntarily; when involuntarily, he acts neither unjustly nor justly except in
an incidental way; for he does things which happen to be just or unjust.
Whether an act is or is not one of injustice (or of justice) is determined by
its voluntariness or involuntariness; for when it is voluntary it is blamed,
and at the same time is then an act of injustice; so that there will be things
that are unjust but not yet acts of injustice, if voluntariness be not present
as well. By the voluntary I mean, as has been said before, any of the things in
a man's own power which he does with knowledge, i.e. not in ignorance either of
the person acted on or of the instrument used or of the end that will be
attained (e.g. whom he is striking, with what, and to what end), each such act
being done not incidentally nor under compulsion (e.g. if A takes B's hand and
therewith strikes C, B does not act voluntarily; for the act was not in his own
power). The person struck may be the striker's father, and the striker may know
that it is a man or one of the persons present, but not know that it is his
father; a similar distinction may be made in the case of the end, and with
regard to the whole action. Therefore that which is done in ignorance, or
though not done in ignorance is not in the agent's power, or is done under compulsion,
is involuntary (for many natural processes, even, we knowingly both perform and
experience, none of which is either voluntary or involuntary; e.g. growing old
or dying). But in the case of unjust and just acts alike the injustice or
justice may be only incidental; for a man might return a deposit unwillingly
and from fear, and then he must not be said either to do what is just or to act
justly, except in an incidental way. Similarly the man who under compulsion and
unwillingly fails to return the deposit must be said to act unjustly, and to do
what is unjust, only incidentally. Of voluntary acts we do some by choice,
others not by choice; by choice those which we do after deliberation, not by
choice those which we do without previous deliberation. Thus there are three
kinds of injury in transactions between man and man; those done in ignorance
are mistakes when the person acted on, the act, the instrument, or the end that
will be attained is other than the agent supposed; the agent thought either that
he was not hiting any one or that he was not hitting with this missile or not
hitting this person or to this end, but a result followed other than that which
he thought likely (e.g. he threw not with intent to wound but only to prick),
or the person hit or the missile was other than he supposed. Now when (1) the
injury takes place contrary to reasonable expectation, it is a misadventure.
When (2) it is not contrary to reasonable expectation, but does not imply vice,
it is a mistake (for a man makes a mistake when the fault originates in him,
but is the victim of accident when the origin lies outside him). When (3) he
acts with knowledge but not after deliberation, it is an act of injustice-e.g.
the acts due to anger or to other passions necessary or natural to man; for
when men do such harmful and mistaken acts they act unjustly, and the acts are
acts of injustice, but this does not imply that the doers are unjust or wicked;
for the injury is not due to vice. But when (4) a man acts from choice, he is an
unjust man and a vicious man. Hence
acts proceeding from anger are rightly judged not to be done of malice
aforethought; for it is not the man who acts in anger but he who enraged him
that starts the mischief. Again, the matter in dispute is not whether the thing
happened or not, but its justice; for it is apparent injustice that occasions
rage. For they do not dispute about the occurrence of the act-as in commercial
transactions where one of the two parties must be vicious-unless they do so
owing to forgetfulness; but, agreeing about the fact, they dispute on which
side justice lies (whereas a man who has deliberately injured another cannot
help knowing that he has done so), so that the one thinks he is being treated
unjustly and the other disagrees. But
if a man harms another by choice, he acts unjustly; and these are the acts of
injustice which imply that the doer is an unjust man, provided that the act
violates proportion or equality. Similarly, a man is just when he acts justly
by choice; but he acts justly if he merely acts voluntarily. Of involuntary acts some are excusable,
others not. For the mistakes which men make not only in ignorance but also from
ignorance are excusable, while those which men do not from ignorance but
(though they do them in ignorance) owing to a passion which is neither natural
nor such as man is liable to, are not excusable.
9
Assuming that we have sufficiently defined
the suffering and doing of injustice, it may be asked (1) whether the truth in
expressed in Euripides' paradoxical words:
I slew my mother, that's my tale in
brief. Were you both willing, or
unwilling both?
Is it truly possible to be willingly treated
unjustly, or is all suffering of injustice the contrary involuntary, as all unjust
action is voluntary? And is all suffering of injustice of the latter kind or
else all of the former, or is it sometimes voluntary, sometimes involuntary?
So, too, with the case of being justly treated; all just action is voluntary,
so that it is reasonable that there should be a similar opposition in either
case-that both being unjustly and being justly treated should be either alike
voluntary or alike involuntary. But it would be thought paradoxical even in the
case of being justly treated, if it were always voluntary; for some are
unwillingly treated justly. (2) One might raise this question also, whether
every one who has suffered what is unjust is being unjustly treated, or on the
other hand it is with suffering as with acting. In action and in passivity
alike it is possible to partake of justice incidentally, and similarly (it is
plain) of injustice; for to do what is unjust is not the same as to act
unjustly, nor to suffer what is unjust as to be treated unjustly, and similarly
in the case of acting justly and being justly treated; for it is impossible to
be unjustly treated if the other does not act unjustly, or justly treated
unless he acts justly. Now if to act unjustly is simply to harm some one
voluntarily, and 'voluntarily' means 'knowing the person acted on, the
instrument, and the manner of one's acting', and the incontinent man
voluntarily harms himself, not only will he voluntarily be unjustly treated but
it will be possible to treat oneself unjustly. (This also is one of the
questions in doubt, whether a man can treat himself unjustly.) Again, a man may
voluntarily, owing to incontinence, be harmed by another who acts voluntarily,
so that it would be possible to be voluntarily treated unjustly. Or is our
definition incorrect; must we to 'harming another, with knowledge both of the
person acted on, of the instrument, and of the manner' add 'contrary to the
wish of the person acted on'? Then a man may be voluntarily harmed and
voluntarily suffer what is unjust, but no one is voluntarily treated unjustly;
for no one wishes to be unjustly treated, not even the incontinent man. He acts
contrary to his wish; for no one wishes for what he does not think to be good,
but the incontinent man does do things that he does not think he ought to do.
Again, one who gives what is his own, as Homer says Glaucus gave Diomede
Armour of gold for brazen, the price of a
hundred beeves for nine,
is
not unjustly treated; for though to give is in his power, to be unjustly
treated is not, but there must be some one to treat him unjustly. It is plain,
then, that being unjustly treated is not voluntary. Of the questions we intended to discuss two still remain for
discussion; (3) whether it is the man who has assigned to another more than his
share that acts unjustly, or he who has the excessive share, and (4) whether it
is possible to treat oneself unjustly. The questions are connected; for if the
former alternative is possible and the distributor acts unjustly and not the
man who has the excessive share, then if a man assigns more to another than to
himself, knowingly and voluntarily, he treats himself unjustly; which is what
modest people seem to do, since the virtuous man tends to take less than his
share. Or does this statement too need qualification? For (a) he perhaps gets
more than his share of some other good, e.g. of honour or of intrinsic
nobility. (b) The question is solved by applying the distinction we applied to
unjust action; for he suffers nothing contrary to his own wish, so that he is
not unjustly treated as far as this goes, but at most only suffers harm. It is plain too that the distributor acts
unjustly, but not always the man who has the excessive share; for it is not he
to whom what is unjust appertains that acts unjustly, but he to whom it appertains
to do the unjust act voluntarily, i.e. the person in whom lies the origin of
the action, and this lies in the distributor, not in the receiver. Again, since
the word 'do' is ambiguous, and there is a sense in which lifeless things, or a
hand, or a servant who obeys an order, may be said to slay, he who gets an
excessive share does not act unjustly, though he 'does' what is unjust. Again, if the distributor gave his judgement
in ignorance, he does not act unjustly in respect of legal justice, and his judgement
is not unjust in this sense, but in a sense it is unjust (for legal justice and
primordial justice are different); but if with knowledge he judged unjustly, he
is himself aiming at an excessive share either of gratitude or of revenge. As
much, then, as if he were to share in the plunder, the man who has judged
unjustly for these reasons has got too much; the fact that what he gets is
different from what he distributes makes no difference, for even if he awards
land with a view to sharing in the plunder he gets not land but money. Men think that acting unjustly is in their
power, and therefore that being just is easy. But it is not; to lie with one's
neighbour's wife, to wound another, to deliver a bribe, is easy and in our
power, but to do these things as a result of a certain state of character is
neither easy nor in our power. Similarly to know what is just and what is
unjust requires, men think, no great wisdom, because it is not hard to
understand the matters dealt with by the laws (though these are not the things
that are just, except incidentally); but how actions must be done and
distributions effected in order to be just, to know this is a greater
achievement than knowing what is good for the health; though even there, while
it is easy to know that honey, wine, hellebore, cautery, and the use of the
knife are so, to know how, to whom, and when these should be applied with a
view to producing health, is no less an achievement than that of being a
physician. Again, for this very reason men think that acting unjustly is
characteristic of the just man no less than of the unjust, because he would be
not less but even more capable of doing each of these unjust acts; for he could
lie with a woman or wound a neighbour; and the brave man could throw away his
shield and turn to flight in this direction or in that. But to play the coward
or to act unjustly consists not in doing these things, except incidentally, but
in doing them as the result of a certain state of character, just as to
practise medicine and healing consists not in applying or not applying the
knife, in using or not using medicines, but in doing so in a certain way. Just acts occur between people who
participate in things good in themselves and can have too much or too little of
them; for some beings (e.g. presumably the gods) cannot have too much of them,
and to others, those who are incurably bad, not even the smallest share in them
is beneficial but all such goods are harmful, while to others they are
beneficial up to a point; therefore justice is essentially something
human.
10
Our next subject is equity and the equitable
(to epiekes), and their respective relations to justice and the just. For on
examination they appear to be neither absolutely the same nor generically
different; and while we sometime praise what is equitable and the equitable man
(so that we apply the name by way of praise even to instances of the other
virtues, instead of 'good' meaning by epieikestebon that a thing is better), at
other times, when we reason it out, it seems strange if the equitable, being
something different from the just, is yet praiseworthy; for either the just or
the equitable is not good, if they are different; or, if both are good, they
are the same. These, then, are pretty
much the considerations that give rise to the problem about the equitable; they
are all in a sense correct and not opposed to one another; for the equitable,
though it is better than one kind of justice, yet is just, and it is not as
being a different class of thing that it is better than the just. The same
thing, then, is just and equitable, and while both are good the equitable is
superior. What creates the problem is that the equitable is just, but not the
legally just but a correction of legal justice. The reason is that all law is
universal but about some things it is not possible to make a universal
statement which shall be correct. In those cases, then, in which it is
necessary to speak universally, but not possible to do so correctly, the law
takes the usual case, though it is not ignorant of the possibility of error.
And it is none the less correct; for the error is in the law nor in the
legislator but in the nature of the thing, since the matter of practical
affairs is of this kind from the start. When the law speaks universally, then,
and a case arises on it which is not covered by the universal statement, then
it is right, where the legislator fails us and has erred by oversimplicity, to
correct the omission-to say what the legislator himself would have said had he
been present, and would have put into his law if he had known. Hence the
equitable is just, and better than one kind of justice-not better than absolute
justice but better than the error that arises from the absoluteness of the
statement. And this is the nature of the equitable, a correction of law where
it is defective owing to its universality. In fact this is the reason why all
things are not determined by law, that about some things it is impossible to
lay down a law, so that a decree is needed. For when the thing is indefinite
the rule also is indefinite, like the leaden rule used in making the Lesbian
moulding; the rule adapts itself to the shape of the stone and is not rigid,
and so too the decree is adapted to the facts.
It is plain, then, what the equitable is, and that it is just and is
better than one kind of justice. It is evident also from this who the equitable
man is; the man who chooses and does such acts, and is no stickler for his
rights in a bad sense but tends to take less than his share though he has the
law oft his side, is equitable, and this state of character is equity, which is
a sort of justice and not a different state of character.
11
Whether a man can treat himself unjustly or
not, is evident from what has been said. For (a) one class of just acts are
those acts in accordance with any virtue which are prescribed by the law; e.g.
the law does not expressly permit suicide, and what it does not expressly
permit it forbids. Again, when a man in violation of the law harms another
(otherwise than in retaliation) voluntarily, he acts unjustly, and a voluntary
agent is one who knows both the person he is affecting by his action and the
instrument he is using; and he who through anger voluntarily stabs himself does
this contrary to the right rule of life, and this the law does not allow;
therefore he is acting unjustly. But towards whom? Surely towards the state,
not towards himself. For he suffers voluntarily, but no one is voluntarily
treated unjustly. This is also the reason why the state punishes; a certain
loss of civil rights attaches to the man who destroys himself, on the ground
that he is treating the state unjustly.
Further (b) in that sense of 'acting unjustly' in which the man who 'acts
unjustly' is unjust only and not bad all round, it is not possible to treat
oneself unjustly (this is different from the former sense; the unjust man in
one sense of the term is wicked in a particularized way just as the coward is,
not in the sense of being wicked all round, so that his 'unjust act' does not
manifest wickedness in general). For (i) that would imply the possibility of
the same thing's having been subtracted from and added to the same thing at the
same time; but this is impossible-the just and the unjust always involve more
than one person. Further, (ii) unjust action is voluntary and done by choice,
and takes the initiative (for the man who because he has suffered does the same
in return is not thought to act unjustly); but if a man harms himself he
suffers and does the same things at the same time. Further, (iii) if a man
could treat himself unjustly, he could be voluntarily treated unjustly.
Besides, (iv) no one acts unjustly without committing particular acts of
injustice; but no one can commit adultery with his own wife or housebreaking on
his own house or theft on his own property,
In general, the question 'can a man treat himself unjustly?' is solved
also by the distinction we applied to the question 'can a man be voluntarily
treated unjustly?' (It is evident too
that both are bad, being unjustly treated and acting unjustly; for the one
means having less and the other having more than the intermediate amount, which
plays the part here that the healthy does in the medical art, and that good
condition does in the art of bodily training. But still acting unjustly is the
worse, for it involves vice and is blameworthy-involves vice which is either of
the complete and unqualified kind or almost so (we must admit the latter
alternative, because not all voluntary unjust action implies injustice as a
state of character), while being unjustly treated does not involve vice and
injustice in oneself. In itself, then, being unjustly treated is less bad, but
there is nothing to prevent its being incidentally a greater evil. But theory
cares nothing for this; it calls pleurisy a more serious mischief than a
stumble; yet the latter may become incidentally the more serious, if the fall
due to it leads to your being taken prisoner or put to death the enemy.) Metaphorically and in virtue of a certain
resemblance there is a justice, not indeed between a man and himself, but
between certain parts of him; yet not every kind of justice but that of master
and servant or that of husband and wife. For these are the ratios in which the
part of the soul that has a rational principle stands to the irrational part;
and it is with a view to these parts that people also think a man can be unjust
to himself, viz. because these parts are liable to suffer something contrary to
their respective desires; there is therefore thought to be a mutual justice
between them as between ruler and ruled.
Let this be taken as our account of justice and the other, i.e. the
other moral, virtues.
BOOK VI
1
SINCE we have previously said that one ought
to choose that which is intermediate, not the excess nor the defect, and that
the intermediate is determined by the dictates of the right rule, let us
discuss the nature of these dictates. In all the states of character we have
mentioned, as in all other matters, there is a mark to which the man who has
the rule looks, and heightens or relaxes his activity accordingly, and there is
a standard which determines the mean states which we say are intermediate
between excess and defect, being in accordance with the right rule. But such a
statement, though true, is by no means clear; for not only here but in all
other pursuits which are objects of knowledge it is indeed true to say that we
must not exert ourselves nor relax our efforts too much nor too little, but to
an intermediate extent and as the right rule dictates; but if a man had only
this knowledge he would be none the wiser e.g. we should not know what sort of
medicines to apply to our body if some one were to say 'all those which the
medical art prescribes, and which agree with the practice of one who possesses
the art'. Hence it is necessary with regard to the states of the soul also not
only that this true statement should be made, but also that it should be
determined what is the right rule and what is the standard that fixes it. We divided the virtues of the soul and a
said that some are virtues of character and others of intellect. Now we have
discussed in detail the moral virtues; with regard to the others let us express
our view as follows, beginning with some remarks about the soul. We said before
that there are two parts of the soul-that which grasps a rule or rational
principle, and the irrational; let us now draw a similar distinction within the
part which grasps a rational principle. And let it be assumed that there are
two parts which grasp a rational principle-one by which we contemplate the kind
of things whose originative causes are invariable, and one by which we
contemplate variable things; for where objects differ in kind the part of the
soul answering to each of the two is different in kind, since it is in virtue
of a certain likeness and kinship with their objects that they have the
knowledge they have. Let one of these parts be called the scientific and the
other the calculative; for to deliberate and to calculate are the same thing,
but no one deliberates about the invariable. Therefore the calculative is one
part of the faculty which grasps a rational principle. We must, then, learn
what is the best state of each of these two parts; for this is the virtue of
each.
2
The virtue of a thing is relative to its
proper work. Now there are three things in the soul which control action and
truth-sensation, reason, desire. Of
these sensation originates no action; this is plain from the fact that the
lower animals have sensation but no share in action. What affirmation and negation are in thinking, pursuit and
avoidance are in desire; so that since moral virtue is a state of character
concerned with choice, and choice is deliberate desire, therefore both the reasoning
must be true and the desire right, if the choice is to be good, and the latter
must pursue just what the former asserts. Now this kind of intellect and of
truth is practical; of the intellect which is contemplative, not practical nor
productive, the good and the bad state are truth and falsity respectively (for
this is the work of everything intellectual); while of the part which is
practical and intellectual the good state is truth in agreement with right
desire. The origin of action-its
efficient, not its final cause-is choice, and that of choice is desire and
reasoning with a view to an end. This is why choice cannot exist either without
reason and intellect or without a moral state; for good action and its opposite
cannot exist without a combination of intellect and character. Intellect
itself, however, moves nothing, but only the intellect which aims at an end and
is practical; for this rules the productive intellect, as well, since every one
who makes makes for an end, and that which is made is not an end in the
unqualified sense (but only an end in a particular relation, and the end of a
particular operation)-only that which is done is that; for good action is an
end, and desire aims at this. Hence choice is either desiderative reason or
ratiocinative desire, and such an origin of action is a man. (It is to be noted
that nothing that is past is an object of choice, e.g. no one chooses to have
sacked Troy; for no one deliberates about the past, but about what is future
and capable of being otherwise, while what is past is not capable of not having
taken place; hence Agathon is right in saying
For this alone is lacking even to God, To make undone things thathave once been
done.)
The work of both the intellectual parts,
then, is truth. Therefore the states that are most strictly those in respect of
which each of these parts will reach truth are the virtues of the two
parts.
3
Let us begin, then, from the beginning, and
discuss these states once more. Let it be assumed that the states by virtue of
which the soul possesses truth by way of affirmation or denial are five in
number, i.e. art, scientific knowledge, practical wisdom, philosophic wisdom,
intuitive reason; we do not include judgement and opinion because in these we
may be mistaken. Now what scientific
knowledge is, if we are to speak exactly and not follow mere similarities, is
plain from what follows. We all suppose that what we know is not even capable
of being otherwise; of things capable of being otherwise we do not know, when they
have passed outside our observation, whether they exist or not. Therefore the
object of scientific knowledge is of necessity. Therefore it is eternal; for
things that are of necessity in the unqualified sense are all eternal; and
things that are eternal are ungenerated and imperishable. Again, every science
is thought to be capable of being taught, and its object of being learned. And
all teaching starts from what is already known, as we maintain in the Analytics
also; for it proceeds sometimes through induction and sometimes by syllogism.
Now induction is the starting-point which knowledge even of the universal
presupposes, while syllogism proceeds from universals. There are therefore
starting-points from which syllogism proceeds, which are not reached by
syllogism; it is therefore by induction that they are acquired. Scientific
knowledge is, then, a state of capacity to demonstrate, and has the other
limiting characteristics which we specify in the Analytics, for it is when a
man believes in a certain way and the starting-points are known to him that he
has scientific knowledge, since if they are not better known to him than the
conclusion, he will have his knowledge only incidentally. Let this, then, be taken as our account of
scientific knowledge.
4
In the variable are included both things made
and things done; making and acting are different (for their nature we treat
even the discussions outside our school as reliable); so that the reasoned
state of capacity to act is different from the reasoned state of capacity to
make. Hence too they are not included one in the other; for neither is acting
making nor is making acting. Now since architecture is an art and is
essentially a reasoned state of capacity to make, and there is neither any art
that is not such a state nor any such state that is not an art, art is
identical with a state of capacity to make, involving a true course of
reasoning. All art is concerned with coming into being, i.e. with contriving
and considering how something may come into being which is capable of either
being or not being, and whose origin is in the maker and not in the thing made;
for art is concerned neither with things that are, or come into being, by
necessity, nor with things that do so in accordance with nature (since these
have their origin in themselves). Making and acting being different, art must
be a matter of making, not of acting. And in a sense chance and art are
concerned with the same objects; as Agathon says, 'art loves chance and chance
loves art'. Art, then, as has been is a state concerned with making, involving
a true course of reasoning, and lack of art on the contrary is a state
concerned with making, involving a false course of reasoning; both are
concerned with the variable.
5
Regarding practical wisdom we shall get at
the truth by considering who are the persons we credit with it. Now it is
thought to be the mark of a man of practical wisdom to be able to deliberate
well about what is good and expedient for himself, not in some particular
respect, e.g. about what sorts of thing conduce to health or to strength, but
about what sorts of thing conduce to the good life in general. This is shown by
the fact that we credit men with practical wisdom in some particular respect
when they have calculated well with a view to some good end which is one of
those that are not the object of any art. It follows that in the general sense
also the man who is capable of deliberating has practical wisdom. Now no one
deliberates about things that are invariable, nor about things that it is
impossible for him to do. Therefore, since scientific knowledge involves
demonstration, but there is no demonstration of things whose first principles
are variable (for all such things might actually be otherwise), and since it is
impossible to deliberate about things that are of necessity, practical wisdom
cannot be scientific knowledge nor art; not science because that which can be
done is capable of being otherwise, not art because action and making are
different kinds of thing. The remaining alternative, then, is that it is a true
and reasoned state of capacity to act with regard to the things that are good
or bad for man. For while making has an end other than itself, action cannot;
for good action itself is its end. It is for this reason that we think Pericles
and men like him have practical wisdom, viz. because they can see what is good
for themselves and what is good for men in general; we consider that those can
do this who are good at managing households or states. (This is why we call
temperance (sophrosune) by this name; we imply that it preserves one's
practical wisdom (sozousa tan phronsin). Now what it preserves is a judgement
of the kind we have described. For it is not any and every judgement that
pleasant and painful objects destroy and pervert, e.g. the judgement that the
triangle has or has not its angles equal to two right angles, but only
judgements about what is to be done. For the originating causes of the things
that are done consist in the end at which they are aimed; but the man who has
been ruined by pleasure or pain forthwith fails to see any such originating
cause-to see that for the sake of this or because of this he ought to choose
and do whatever he chooses and does; for vice is destructive of the originating
cause of action.) Practical wisdom, then, must be a reasoned and true state of
capacity to act with regard to human goods. But further, while there is such a
thing as excellence in art, there is no such thing as excellence in practical
wisdom; and in art he who errs willingly is preferable, but in practical
wisdom, as in the virtues, he is the reverse. Plainly, then, practical wisdom
is a virtue and not an art. There being two parts of the soul that can follow a
course of reasoning, it must be the virtue of one of the two, i.e. of that part
which forms opinions; for opinion is about the variable and so is practical
wisdom. But yet it is not only a reasoned state; this is shown by the fact that
a state of that sort may forgotten but practical wisdom cannot.
6
Scientific knowledge is judgement about
things that are universal and necessary, and the conclusions of demonstration,
and all scientific knowledge, follow from first principles (for scientific
knowledge involves apprehension of a rational ground). This being so, the first
principle from which what is scientifically known follows cannot be an object
of scientific knowledge, of art, or of practical wisdom; for that which can be
scientifically known can be demonstrated, and art and practical wisdom deal
with things that are variable. Nor are these first principles the objects of
philosophic wisdom, for it is a mark of the philosopher to have demonstration
about some things. If, then, the states of mind by which we have truth and are
never deceived about things invariable or even variable are scientific
knowlededge, practical wisdom, philosophic wisdom, and intuitive reason, and it
cannot be any of the three (i.e. practical wisdom, scientific knowledge, or
philosophic wisdom), the remaining alternative is that it is intuitive reason
that grasps the first principles.
7
Wisdom (1) in the arts we ascribe to their
most finished exponents, e.g. to Phidias as a sculptor and to Polyclitus as a
maker of portrait-statues, and here we mean nothing by wisdom except excellence
in art; but (2) we think that some people are wise in general, not in some
particular field or in any other limited respect, as Homer says in the
Margites,
Him did the gods make neither a digger nor
yet a ploughman Nor wise in anything
else.
Therefore
wisdom must plainly be the most finished of the forms of knowledge. It follows
that the wise man must not only know what follows from the first principles,
but must also possess truth about the first principles. Therefore wisdom must
be intuitive reason combined with scientific knowledge-scientific knowledge of
the highest objects which has received as it were its proper completion. Of the highest objects, we say; for it would
be strange to think that the art of politics, or practical wisdom, is the best
knowledge, since man is not the best thing in the world. Now if what is healthy
or good is different for men and for fishes, but what is white or straight is
always the same, any one would say that what is wise is the same but what is
practically wise is different; for it is to that which observes well the
various matters concerning itself that one ascribes practical wisdom, and it is
to this that one will entrust such matters. This is why we say that some even
of the lower animals have practical wisdom, viz. those which are found to have
a power of foresight with regard to their own life. It is evident also that
philosophic wisdom and the art of politics cannot be the same; for if the state
of mind concerned with a man's own interests is to be called philosophic
wisdom, there will be many philosophic wisdoms; there will not be one concerned
with the good of all animals (any more than there is one art of medicine for
all existing things), but a different philosophic wisdom about the good of each
species. But if the argument be that
man is the best of the animals, this makes no difference; for there are other
things much more divine in their nature even than man, e.g., most
conspicuously, the bodies of which the heavens are framed. From what has been
said it is plain, then, that philosophic wisdom is scientific knowledge,
combined with intuitive reason, of the things that are highest by nature. This
is why we say Anaxagoras, Thales, and men like them have philosophic but not
practical wisdom, when we see them ignorant of what is to their own advantage,
and why we say that they know things that are remarkable, admirable, difficult,
and divine, but useless; viz. because it is not human goods that they
seek. Practical wisdom on the other
hand is concerned with things human and things about which it is possible to
deliberate; for we say this is above all the work of the man of practical
wisdom, to deliberate well, but no one deliberates about things invariable, nor
about things which have not an end, and that a good that can be brought about
by action. The man who is without qualification good at deliberating is the man
who is capable of aiming in accordance with calculation at the best for man of
things attainable by action. Nor is practical wisdom concerned with universals
only-it must also recognize the particulars; for it is practical, and practice
is concerned with particulars. This is why some who do not know, and especially
those who have experience, are more practical than others who know; for if a
man knew that light meats are digestible and wholesome, but did not know which
sorts of meat are light, he would not produce health, but the man who knows
that chicken is wholesome is more likely to produce health. Now practical wisdom is concerned with
action; therefore one should have both forms of it, or the latter in preference
to the former. But of practical as of philosophic wisdom there must be a
controlling kind.
8
Political wisdom and practical wisdom are the
same state of mind, but their essence is not the same. Of the wisdom concerned
with the city, the practical wisdom which plays a controlling part is
legislative wisdom, while that which is related to this as particulars to their
universal is known by the general name 'political wisdom'; this has to do with
action and deliberation, for a decree is a thing to be carried out in the form
of an individual act. This is why the exponents of this art are alone said to
'take part in politics'; for these alone 'do things' as manual labourers 'do
things'. Practical wisdom also is
identified especially with that form of it which is concerned with a man
himself-with the individual; and this is known by the general name 'practical
wisdom'; of the other kinds one is called household management, another
legislation, the third politics, and of the latter one part is called
deliberative and the other judicial. Now knowing what is good for oneself will
be one kind of knowledge, but it is very different from the other kinds; and
the man who knows and concerns himself with his own interests is thought to
have practical wisdom, while politicians are thought to be busybodies; hence
the word of Euripides,
But how could I be wise, who might at
ease, Numbered among the army's multitude, Have had an equal share? For those who aim too high and do too much.
Those
who think thus seek their own good, and consider that one ought to do so. From
this opinion, then, has come the view that such men have practical wisdom; yet
perhaps one's own good cannot exist without household management, nor without a
form of government. Further, how one should order one's own affairs is not
clear and needs inquiry. What has been
said is confirmed by the fact that while young men become geometricians and
mathematicians and wise in matters like these, it is thought that a young man
of practical wisdom cannot be found. The cause is that such wisdom is concerned
not only with universals but with particulars, which become familiar from
experience, but a young man has no experience, for it is length of time that
gives experience; indeed one might ask this question too, why a boy may become
a mathematician, but not a philosopher or a physicist. It is because the
objects of mathematics exist by abstraction, while the first principles of
these other subjects come from experience, and because young men have no
conviction about the latter but merely use the proper language, while the
essence of mathematical objects is plain enough to them? Further, error in deliberation may be either
about the universal or about the particular; we may fall to know either that
all water that weighs heavy is bad, or that this particular water weighs
heavy. That practical wisdom is not
scientific knowledge is evident; for it is, as has been said, concerned with
the ultimate particular fact, since the thing to be done is of this nature. It
is opposed, then, to intuitive reason; for intuitive reason is of the limiting
premisses, for which no reason can be given, while practical wisdom is concerned
with the ultimate particular, which is the object not of scientific knowledge
but of perception-not the perception of qualities peculiar to one sense but a
perception akin to that by which we perceive that the particular figure before
us is a triangle; for in that direction as well as in that of the major premiss
there will be a limit. But this is rather perception than practical wisdom,
though it is another kind of perception than that of the qualities peculiar to
each sense.
9
There is a difference between inquiry and
deliberation; for deliberation is inquiry into a particular kind of thing. We
must grasp the nature of excellence in deliberation as well whether it is a
form of scientific knowledge, or opinion, or skill in conjecture, or some other
kind of thing. Scientific knowledge it is not; for men do not inquire about the
things they know about, but good deliberation is a kind of deliberation, and he
who deliberates inquires and calculates. Nor is it skill in conjecture; for
this both involves no reasoning and is something that is quick in its
operation, while men deliberate a long time, and they say that one should carry
out quickly the conclusions of one's deliberation, but should deliberate
slowly. Again, readiness of mind is different from excellence in deliberation;
it is a sort of skill in conjecture. Nor again is excellence in deliberation
opinion of any sort. But since the man who deliberates badly makes a mistake,
while he who deliberates well does so correctly, excellence in deliberation is
clearly a kind of correctness, but neither of knowledge nor of opinion; for
there is no such thing as correctness of knowledge (since there is no such
thing as error of knowledge), and correctness of opinion is truth; and at the
same time everything that is an object of opinion is already determined. But
again excellence in deliberation involves reasoning. The remaining alternative,
then, is that it is correctness of thinking; for this is not yet assertion,
since, while even opinion is not inquiry but has reached the stage of
assertion, the man who is deliberating, whether he does so well or ill, is
searching for something and calculating.
But excellence in deliberation is a certain correctness of deliberation;
hence we must first inquire what deliberation is and what it is about. And,
there being more than one kind of correctness, plainly excellence in
deliberation is not any and every kind; for (1) the incontinent man and the bad
man, if he is clever, will reach as a result of his calculation what he sets
before himself, so that he will have deliberated correctly, but he will have
got for himself a great evil. Now to have deliberated well is thought to be a
good thing; for it is this kind of correctness of deliberation that is
excellence in deliberation, viz. that which tends to attain what is good. But
(2) it is possible to attain even good by a false syllogism, and to attain what
one ought to do but not by the right means, the middle term being false; so
that this too is not yet excellence in deliberation this state in virtue of
which one attains what one ought but not by the right means. Again (3) it is
possible to attain it by long deliberation while another man attains it
quickly. Therefore in the former case we have not yet got excellence in deliberation,
which is rightness with regard to the expedient-rightness in respect both of
the end, the manner, and the time. (4) Further it is possible to have
deliberated well either in the unqualified sense or with reference to a
particular end. Excellence in deliberation in the unqualified sense, then, is
that which succeeds with reference to what is the end in the unqualified sense,
and excellence in deliberation in a particular sense is that which succeeds
relatively to a particular end. If, then, it is characteristic of men of
practical wisdom to have deliberated well, excellence in deliberation will be
correctness with regard to what conduces to the end of which practical wisdom
is the true apprehension.
10
Understanding, also, and goodness of understanding,
in virtue of which men are said to be men of understanding or of good
understanding, are neither entirely the same as opinion or scientific knowledge
(for at that rate all men would have been men of understanding), nor are they
one of the particular sciences, such as medicine, the science of things
connected with health, or geometry, the science of spatial magnitudes. For
understanding is neither about things that are always and are unchangeable, nor
about any and every one of the things that come into being, but about things
which may become subjects of questioning and deliberation. Hence it is about
the same objects as practical wisdom; but understanding and practical wisdom
are not the same. For practical wisdom issues commands, since its end is what
ought to be done or not to be done; but understanding only judges.
(Understanding is identical with goodness of understanding, men of
understanding with men of good understanding.) Now understanding is neither the
having nor the acquiring of practical wisdom; but as learning is called
understanding when it means the exercise of the faculty of knowledge, so
'understanding' is applicable to the exercise of the faculty of opinion for the
purpose of judging of what some one else says about matters with which
practical wisdom is concerned-and of judging soundly; for 'well' and 'soundly'
are the same thing. And from this has come the use of the name 'understanding'
in virtue of which men are said to be 'of good understanding', viz. from the
application of the word to the grasping of scientific truth; for we often call
such grasping understanding.
11
What is called judgement, in virtue of which
men are said to 'be sympathetic judges' and to 'have judgement', is the right
discrimination of the equitable. This is shown by the fact that we say the
equitable man is above all others a man of sympathetic judgement, and identify
equity with sympathetic judgement about certain facts. And sympathetic
judgement is judgement which discriminates what is equitable and does so
correctly; and correct judgement is that which judges what is true. Now all the states we have considered
converge, as might be expected, to the same point; for when we speak of
judgement and understanding and practical wisdom and intuitive reason we credit
the same people with possessing judgement and having reached years of reason
and with having practical wisdom and understanding. For all these faculties
deal with ultimates, i.e. with particulars; and being a man of understanding
and of good or sympathetic judgement consists in being able judge about the
things with which practical wisdom is concerned; for the equities are common to
all good men in relation to other men. Now all things which have to be done are
included among particulars or ultimates; for not only must the man of practical
wisdom know particular facts, but understanding and judgement are also
concerned with things to be done, and these are ultimates. And intuitive reason
is concerned with the ultimates in both directions; for both the first terms
and the last are objects of intuitive reason and not of argument, and the
intuitive reason which is presupposed by demonstrations grasps the unchangeable
and first terms, while the intuitive reason involved in practical reasonings grasps
the last and variable fact, i.e. the minor premiss. For these variable facts
are the starting-points for the apprehension of the end, since the universals
are reached from the particulars; of these therefore we must have perception,
and this perception is intuitive reason.
This is why these states are thought to be natural endowments-why, while
no one is thought to be a philosopher by nature, people are thought to have by
nature judgement, understanding, and intuitive reason. This is shown by the
fact that we think our powers correspond to our time of life, and that a
particular age brings with it intuitive reason and judgement; this implies that
nature is the cause. (Hence intuitive reason is both beginning and end; for
demonstrations are from these and about these.) Therefore we ought to attend to
the undemonstrated sayings and opinions of experienced and older people or of
people of practical wisdom not less than to demonstrations; for because
experience has given them an eye they see aright. We have stated, then, what practical and philosophic wisdom are,
and with what each of them is concerned, and we have said that each is the
virtue of a different part of the soul.
12
Difficulties might be raised as to the
utility of these qualities of mind. For (1) philosophic wisdom will contemplate
none of the things that will make a man happy (for it is not concerned with any
coming into being), and though practical wisdom has this merit, for what
purpose do we need it? Practical wisdom is the quality of mind concerned with
things just and noble and good for man, but these are the things which it is
the mark of a good man to do, and we are none the more able to act for knowing
them if the virtues are states of character, just as we are none the better
able to act for knowing the things that are healthy and sound, in the sense not
of producing but of issuing from the state of health; for we are none the more
able to act for having the art of medicine or of gymnastics. But (2) if we are
to say that a man should have practical wisdom not for the sake of knowing
moral truths but for the sake of becoming good, practical wisdom will be of no
use to those who are good; again it is of no use to those who have not virtue;
for it will make no difference whether they have practical wisdom themselves or
obey others who have it, and it would be enough for us to do what we do in the
case of health; though we wish to become healthy, yet we do not learn the art
of medicine. (3) Besides this, it would be thought strange if practical wisdom,
being inferior to philosophic wisdom, is to be put in authority over it, as
seems to be implied by the fact that the art which produces anything rules and
issues commands about that thing.
These, then, are the questions we must discuss; so far we have only
stated the difficulties. (1) Now first
let us say that in themselves these states must be worthy of choice because
they are the virtues of the two parts of the soul respectively, even if neither
of them produce anything. (2) Secondly,
they do produce something, not as the art of medicine produces health, however,
but as health produces health; so does philosophic wisdom produce happiness;
for, being a part of virtue entire, by being possessed and by actualizing
itself it makes a man happy. (3) Again,
the work of man is achieved only in accordance with practical wisdom as well as
with moral virtue; for virtue makes us aim at the right mark, and practical
wisdom makes us take the right means. (Of the fourth part of the soul-the
nutritive-there is no such virtue; for there is nothing which it is in its
power to do or not to do.) (4) With
regard to our being none the more able to do because of our practical wisdom
what is noble and just, let us begin a little further back, starting with the
following principle. As we say that some people who do just acts are not
necessarily just, i.e. those who do the acts ordained by the laws either
unwillingly or owing to ignorance or for some other reason and not for the sake
of the acts themselves (though, to be sure, they do what they should and all
the things that the good man ought), so is it, it seems, that in order to be
good one must be in a certain state when one does the several acts, i.e. one
must do them as a result of choice and for the sake of the acts themselves. Now
virtue makes the choice right, but the question of the things which should
naturally be done to carry out our choice belongs not to virtue but to another
faculty. We must devote our attention to these matters and give a clearer statement
about them. There is a faculty which is called cleverness; and this is such as
to be able to do the things that tend towards the mark we have set before
ourselves, and to hit it. Now if the mark be noble, the cleverness is laudable,
but if the mark be bad, the cleverness is mere smartness; hence we call even
men of practical wisdom clever or smart. Practical wisdom is not the faculty,
but it does not exist without this faculty. And this eye of the soul acquires
its formed state not without the aid of virtue, as has been said and is plain;
for the syllogisms which deal with acts to be done are things which involve a
starting-point, viz. 'since the end, i.e. what is best, is of such and such a
nature', whatever it may be (let it for the sake of argument be what we
please); and this is not evident except to the good man; for wickedness
perverts us and causes us to be deceived about the starting-points of action.
Therefore it is evident that it is impossible to be practically wise without
being good.
13
We must therefore consider virtue also once
more; for virtue too is similarly related; as practical wisdom is to
cleverness-not the same, but like it-so is natural virtue to virtue in the
strict sense. For all men think that each type of character belongs to its
possessors in some sense by nature; for from the very moment of birth we are
just or fitted for selfcontrol or brave or have the other moral qualities; but
yet we seek something else as that which is good in the strict sense-we seek
for the presence of such qualities in another way. For both children and brutes
have the natural dispositions to these qualities, but without reason these are
evidently hurtful. Only we seem to see this much, that, while one may be led
astray by them, as a strong body which moves without sight may stumble badly
because of its lack of sight, still, if a man once acquires reason, that makes
a difference in action; and his state, while still like what it was, will then
be virtue in the strict sense. Therefore, as in the part of us which forms
opinions there are two types, cleverness and practical wisdom, so too in the
moral part there are two types, natural virtue and virtue in the strict sense,
and of these the latter involves practical wisdom. This is why some say that all
the virtues are forms of practical wisdom, and why Socrates in one respect was
on the right track while in another he went astray; in thinking that all the
virtues were forms of practical wisdom he was wrong, but in saying they implied
practical wisdom he was right. This is confirmed by the fact that even now all
men, when they define virtue, after naming the state of character and its
objects add 'that (state) which is in accordance with the right rule'; now the
right rule is that which is in accordance with practical wisdom. All men, then,
seem somehow to divine that this kind of state is virtue, viz. that which is in
accordance with practical wisdom. But we must go a little further. For it is
not merely the state in accordance with the right rule, but the state that
implies the presence of the right rule, that is virtue; and practical wisdom is
a right rule about such matters. Socrates, then, thought the virtues were rules
or rational principles (for he thought they were, all of them, forms of
scientific knowledge), while we think they involve a rational principle. It is clear, then, from what has been said,
that it is not possible to be good in the strict sense without practical
wisdom, nor practically wise without moral virtue. But in this way we may also
refute the dialectical argument whereby it might be contended that the virtues
exist in separation from each other; the same man, it might be said, is not
best equipped by nature for all the virtues, so that he will have already
acquired one when he has not yet acquired another. This is possible in respect
of the natural virtues, but not in respect of those in respect of which a man
is called without qualification good; for with the presence of the one quality,
practical wisdom, will be given all the virtues. And it is plain that, even if
it were of no practical value, we should have needed it because it is the
virtue of the part of us in question; plain too that the choice will not be
right without practical wisdom any more than without virtue; for the one deter,
mines the end and the other makes us do the things that lead to the end. But again it is not supreme over philosophic
wisdom, i.e. over the superior part of us, any more than the art of medicine is
over health; for it does not use it but provides for its coming into being; it
issues orders, then, for its sake, but not to it. Further, to maintain its
supremacy would be like saying that the art of politics rules the gods because
it issues orders about all the affairs of the state.
BOOK VII
1
LET us now make a fresh beginning and point
out that of moral states to be avoided there are three kinds-vice,
incontinence, brutishness. The contraries of two of these are evident,-one we
call virtue, the other continence; to brutishness it would be most fitting to
oppose superhuman virtue, a heroic and divine kind of virtue, as Homer has
represented Priam saying of Hector that he was very good,
For he seemed not, he, The child of a mortal man, but as one that
of God's seed came.
Therefore if, as they say, men become gods by
excess of virtue, of this kind must evidently be the state opposed to the
brutish state; for as a brute has no vice or virtue, so neither has a god; his
state is higher than virtue, and that of a brute is a different kind of state
from vice. Now, since it is rarely that
a godlike man is found-to use the epithet of the Spartans, who when they admire
any one highly call him a 'godlike man'-so too the brutish type is rarely found
among men; it is found chiefly among barbarians, but some brutish qualities are
also produced by disease or deformity; and we also call by this evil name those
men who go beyond all ordinary standards by reason of vice. Of this kind of
disposition, however, we must later make some mention, while we have discussed
vice before we must now discuss incontinence and softness (or effeminacy), and
continence and endurance; for we must treat each of the two neither as
identical with virtue or wickedness, nor as a different genus. We must, as in
all other cases, set the observed facts before us and, after first discussing
the difficulties, go on to prove, if possible, the truth of all the common
opinions about these affections of the mind, or, failing this, of the greater
number and the most authoritative; for if we both refute the objections and
leave the common opinions undisturbed, we shall have proved the case
sufficiently. Now (1) both continence
and endurance are thought to be included among things good and praiseworthy, and
both incontinence and soft, ness among things bad and blameworthy; and the same
man is thought to be continent and ready to abide by the result of his
calculations, or incontinent and ready to abandon them. And (2) the incontinent
man, knowing that what he does is bad, does it as a result of passion, while
the continent man, knowing that his appetites are bad, refuses on account of
his rational principle to follow them (3) The temperate man all men call
continent and disposed to endurance, while the continent man some maintain to
be always temperate but others do not; and some call the self-indulgent man
incontinent and the incontinent man selfindulgent indiscriminately, while
others distinguish them. (4) The man of practical wisdom, they sometimes say,
cannot be incontinent, while sometimes they say that some who are practically
wise and clever are incontinent. Again (5) men are said to be incontinent even
with respect to anger, honour, and gain.-These, then, are the things that are
said.
2
Now we may ask (1) how a man who judges
rightly can behave incontinently. That he should behave so when he has
knowledge, some say is impossible; for it would be strange-so Socrates
thought-if when knowledge was in a man something else could master it and drag
it about like a slave. For Socrates was entirely opposed to the view in
question, holding that there is no such thing as incontinence; no one, he said,
when he judges acts against what he judges best-people act so only by reason of
ignorance. Now this view plainly contradicts the observed facts, and we must
inquire about what happens to such a man; if he acts by reason of ignorance,
what is the manner of his ignorance? For that the man who behaves incontinently
does not, before he gets into this state, think he ought to act so, is evident.
But there are some who concede certain of Socrates' contentions but not others;
that nothing is stronger than knowledge they admit, but not that on one acts
contrary to what has seemed to him the better course, and therefore they say
that the incontinent man has not knowledge when he is mastered by his
pleasures, but opinion. But if it is opinion and not knowledge, if it is not a
strong conviction that resists but a weak one, as in men who hesitate, we
sympathize with their failure to stand by such convictions against strong
appetites; but we do not sympathize with wickedness, nor with any of the other
blameworthy states. Is it then practical wisdom whose resistance is mastered?
That is the strongest of all states. But this is absurd; the same man will be
at once practically wise and incontinent, but no one would say that it is the
part of a practically wise man to do willingly the basest acts. Besides, it has
been shown before that the man of practical wisdom is one who will act (for he
is a man concerned with the individual facts) and who has the other
virtues. (2) Further, if continence
involves having strong and bad appetites, the temperate man will not be
continent nor the continent man temperate; for a temperate man will have
neither excessive nor bad appetites. But the continent man must; for if the
appetites are good, the state of character that restrains us from following
them is bad, so that not all continence will be good; while if they are weak
and not bad, there is nothing admirable in resisting them, and if they are weak
and bad, there is nothing great in resisting these either. (3) Further, if continence makes a man ready
to stand by any and every opinion, it is bad, i.e. if it makes him stand even
by a false opinion; and if incontinence makes a man apt to abandon any and
every opinion, there will be a good incontinence, of which Sophocles'
Neoptolemus in the Philoctetes will be an instance; for he is to be praised for
not standing by what Odysseus persuaded him to do, because he is pained at
telling a lie. (4) Further, the
sophistic argument presents a difficulty; the syllogism arising from men's wish
to expose paradoxical results arising from an opponent's view, in order that
they may be admired when they succeed, is one that puts us in a difficulty (for
thought is bound fast when it will not rest because the conclusion does not
satisfy it, and cannot advance because it cannot refute the argument). There is
an argument from which it follows that folly coupled with incontinence is
virtue; for a man does the opposite of what he judges, owing to incontinence,
but judges what is good to be evil and something that he should not do, and
consequence he will do what is good and not what is evil. (5) Further, he who on conviction does and
pursues and chooses what is pleasant would be thought to be better than one who
does so as a result not of calculation but of incontinence; for he is easier to
cure since he may be persuaded to change his mind. But to the incontinent man
may be applied the proverb 'when water chokes, what is one to wash it down
with?' If he had been persuaded of the rightness of what he does, he would have
desisted when he was persuaded to change his mind; but now he acts in spite of
his being persuaded of something quite different. (6) Further, if incontinence and continence are concerned with
any and every kind of object, who is it that is incontinent in the unqualified
sense? No one has all the forms of incontinence, but we say some people are
incontinent without qualification.
3
Of some such kind are the difficulties that
arise; some of these points must be refuted and the others left in possession
of the field; for the solution of the difficulty is the discovery of the truth.
(1) We must consider first, then, whether incontinent people act knowingly or
not, and in what sense knowingly; then (2) with what sorts of object the
incontinent and the continent man may be said to be concerned (i.e. whether
with any and every pleasure and pain or with certain determinate kinds), and
whether the continent man and the man of endurance are the same or different;
and similarly with regard to the other matters germane to this inquiry. The
starting-point of our investigation is (a) the question whether the continent
man and the incontinent are differentiated by their objects or by their
attitude, i.e. whether the incontinent man is incontinent simply by being
concerned with such and such objects, or, instead, by his attitude, or, instead
of that, by both these things; (b) the second question is whether incontinence
and continence are concerned with any and every object or not. The man who is
incontinent in the unqualified sense is neither concerned with any and every
object, but with precisely those with which the self-indulgent man is
concerned, nor is he characterized by being simply related to these (for then
his state would be the same as self-indulgence), but by being related to them
in a certain way. For the one is led on in accordance with his own choice,
thinking that he ought always to pursue the present pleasure; while the other
does not think so, but yet pursues it.
(1) As for the suggestion that it is true opinion and not knowledge
against which we act incontinently, that makes no difference to the argument; for
some people when in a state of opinion do not hesitate, but think they know
exactly. If, then, the notion is that owing to their weak conviction those who
have opinion are more likely to act against their judgement than those who
know, we answer that there need be no difference between knowledge and opinion
in this respect; for some men are no less convinced of what they think than
others of what they know; as is shown by the of Heraclitus. But (a), since we
use the word 'know' in two senses (for both the man who has knowledge but is
not using it and he who is using it are said to know), it will make a
difference whether, when a man does what he should not, he has the knowledge
but is not exercising it, or is exercising it; for the latter seems strange,
but not the former. (b) Further, since
there are two kinds of premisses, there is nothing to prevent a man's having
both premisses and acting against his knowledge, provided that he is using only
the universal premiss and not the particular; for it is particular acts that
have to be done. And there are also two kinds of universal term; one is
predicable of the agent, the other of the object; e.g. 'dry food is good for
every man', and 'I am a man', or 'such and such food is dry'; but whether 'this
food is such and such', of this the incontinent man either has not or is not
exercising the knowledge. There will, then, be, firstly, an enormous difference
between these manners of knowing, so that to know in one way when we act
incontinently would not seem anything strange, while to know in the other way
would be extraordinary. And further (c)
the possession of knowledge in another sense than those just named is something
that happens to men; for within the case of having knowledge but not using it
we see a difference of state, admitting of the possibility of having knowledge
in a sense and yet not having it, as in the instance of a man asleep, mad, or
drunk. But now this is just the condition of men under the influence of
passions; for outbursts of anger and sexual appetites and some other such
passions, it is evident, actually alter our bodily condition, and in some men
even produce fits of madness. It is plain, then, that incontinent people must
be said to be in a similar condition to men asleep, mad, or drunk. The fact
that men use the language that flows from knowledge proves nothing; for even
men under the influence of these passions utter scientific proofs and verses of
Empedocles, and those who have just begun to learn a science can string
together its phrases, but do not yet know it; for it has to become part of
themselves, and that takes time; so that we must suppose that the use of
language by men in an incontinent state means no more than its utterance by
actors on the stage. (d) Again, we may also view the cause as follows with
reference to the facts of human nature. The one opinion is universal, the other
is concerned with the particular facts, and here we come to something within
the sphere of perception; when a single opinion results from the two, the soul
must in one type of case affirm the conclusion, while in the case of opinions
concerned with production it must immediately act (e.g. if 'everything sweet
ought to be tasted', and 'this is sweet', in the sense of being one of the
particular sweet things, the man who can act and is not prevented must at the
same time actually act accordingly). When, then, the universal opinion is
present in us forbidding us to taste, and there is also the opinion that
'everything sweet is pleasant', and that 'this is sweet' (now this is the
opinion that is active), and when appetite happens to be present in us, the one
opinion bids us avoid the object, but appetite leads us towards it (for it can
move each of our bodily parts); so that it turns out that a man behaves
incontinently under the influence (in a sense) of a rule and an opinion, and of
one not contrary in itself, but only incidentally-for the appetite is contrary,
not the opinion-to the right rule. It also follows that this is the reason why
the lower animals are not incontinent, viz. because they have no universal
judgement but only imagination and memory of particulars. The explanation of how the ignorance is
dissolved and the incontinent man regains his knowledge, is the same as in the
case of the man drunk or asleep and is not peculiar to this condition; we must
go to the students of natural science for it. Now, the last premiss both being
an opinion about a perceptible object, and being what determines our actions
this a man either has not when he is in the state of passion, or has it in the
sense in which having knowledge did not mean knowing but only talking, as a
drunken man may utter the verses of Empedocles. And because the last term is
not universal nor equally an object of scientific knowledge with the universal
term, the position that Socrates sought to establish actually seems to result;
for it is not in the presence of what is thought to be knowledge proper that
the affection of incontinence arises (nor is it this that is 'dragged about' as
a result of the state of passion), but in that of perceptual knowledge. This must suffice as our answer to the
question of action with and without knowledge, and how it is possible to behave
incontinently with knowledge.
4
(2) We must next discuss whether there is any
one who is incontinent without qualification, or all men who are incontinent
are so in a particular sense, and if there is, with what sort of objects he is
concerned. That both continent persons and persons of endurance, and
incontinent and soft persons, are concerned with pleasures and pains, is
evident. Now of the things that produce
pleasure some are necessary, while others are worthy of choice in themselves
but admit of excess, the bodily causes of pleasure being necessary (by such I
mean both those concerned with food and those concerned with sexual
intercourse, i.e. the bodily matters with which we defined self-indulgence and
temperance as being concerned), while the others are not necessary but worthy
of choice in themselves (e.g. victory, honour, wealth, and good and pleasant things
of this sort). This being so, (a) those who go to excess with reference to the
latter, contrary to the right rule which is in themselves, are not called
incontinent simply, but incontinent with the qualification 'in respect of
money, gain, honour, or anger',-not simply incontinent, on the ground that they
are different from incontinent people and are called incontinent by reason of a
resemblance. (Compare the case of Anthropos (Man), who won a contest at the
Olympic games; in his case the general definition of man differed little from
the definition peculiar to him, but yet it was different.) This is shown by the
fact that incontinence either without qualification or in respect of some
particular bodily pleasure is blamed not only as a fault but as a kind of vice,
while none of the people who are incontinent in these other respects is so
blamed. But (b) of the people who are
incontinent with respect to bodily enjoyments, with which we say the temperate
and the self-indulgent man are concerned, he who pursues the excesses of things
pleasant-and shuns those of things painful, of hunger and thirst and heat and
cold and all the objects of touch and taste-not by choice but contrary to his
choice and his judgement, is called incontinent, not with the qualification 'in
respect of this or that', e.g. of anger, but just simply. This is confirmed by
the fact that men are called 'soft' with regard to these pleasures, but not
with regard to any of the others. And for this reason we group together the
incontinent and the self-indulgent, the continent and the temperate man-but not
any of these other types-because they are concerned somehow with the same
pleasures and pains; but though these are concerned with the same objects, they
are not similarly related to them, but some of them make a deliberate choice
while the others do not. This is why we
should describe as self-indulgent rather the man who without appetite or with
but a slight appetite pursues the excesses of pleasure and avoids moderate
pains, than the man who does so because of his strong appetites; for what would
the former do, if he had in addition a vigorous appetite, and a violent pain at
the lack of the 'necessary' objects?
Now of appetites and pleasures some belong to the class of things
generically noble and good-for some pleasant things are by nature worthy of
choice, while others are contrary to these, and others are intermediate, to
adopt our previous distinction-e.g. wealth, gain, victory, honour. And with
reference to all objects whether of this or of the intermediate kind men are
not blamed for being affected by them, for desiring and loving them, but for
doing so in a certain way, i.e. for going to excess. (This is why all those who
contrary to the rule either are mastered by or pursue one of the objects which
are naturally noble and good, e.g. those who busy themselves more than they
ought about honour or about children and parents, (are not wicked); for these
too are good, and those who busy themselves about them are praised; but yet
there is an excess even in them-if like Niobe one were to fight even against
the gods, or were to be as much devoted to one's father as Satyrus nicknamed
'the filial', who was thought to be very silly on this point.) There is no
wickedness, then, with regard to these objects, for the reason named, viz.
because each of them is by nature a thing worthy of choice for its own sake;
yet excesses in respect of them are bad and to be avoided. Similarly there is
no incontinence with regard to them; for incontinence is not only to be avoided
but is also a thing worthy of blame; but owing to a similarity in the state of
feeling people apply the name incontinence, adding in each case what it is in
respect of, as we may describe as a bad doctor or a bad actor one whom we
should not call bad, simply. As, then, in this case we do not apply the term
without qualification because each of these conditions is no shadness but only
analogous to it, so it is clear that in the other case also that alone must be
taken to be incontinence and continence which is concerned with the same
objects as temperance and self-indulgence, but we apply the term to anger by
virtue of a resemblance; and this is why we say with a qualification
'incontinent in respect of anger' as we say 'incontinent in respect of honour,
or of gain'.
5
(1) Some things are pleasant by nature, and
of these (a) some are so without qualification, and (b) others are so with
reference to particular classes either of animals or of men; while (2) others are
not pleasant by nature, but (a) some of them become so by reason of injuries to
the system, and (b) others by reason of acquired habits, and (c) others by
reason of originally bad natures. This being so, it is possible with regard to
each of the latter kinds to discover similar states of character to those
recognized with regard to the former; I mean (A) the brutish states, as in the
case of the female who, they say, rips open pregnant women and devours the
infants, or of the things in which some of the tribes about the Black Sea that
have gone savage are said to delight-in raw meat or in human flesh, or in
lending their children to one another to feast upon-or of the story told of
Phalaris. These states are brutish, but
(B) others arise as a result of disease (or, in some cases, of madness, as with
the man who sacrificed and ate his mother, or with the slave who ate the liver
of his fellow), and others are morbid states (C) resulting from custom, e.g.
the habit of plucking out the hair or of gnawing the nails, or even coals or
earth, and in addition to these paederasty; for these arise in some by nature
and in others, as in those who have been the victims of lust from childhood,
from habit. Now those in whom nature is
the cause of such a state no one would call incontinent, any more than one
would apply the epithet to women because of the passive part they play in
copulation; nor would one apply it to those who are in a morbid condition as a
result of habit. To have these various types of habit is beyond the limits of
vice, as brutishness is too; for a man who has them to master or be mastered by
them is not simple (continence or) incontinence but that which is so by
analogy, as the man who is in this condition in respect of fits of anger is to
be called incontinent in respect of that feeling but not incontinent simply.
For every excessive state whether of folly, of cowardice, of self-indulgence,
or of bad temper, is either brutish or morbid; the man who is by nature apt to
fear everything, even the squeak of a mouse, is cowardly with a brutish
cowardice, while the man who feared a weasel did so in consequence of disease;
and of foolish people those who by nature are thoughtless and live by their
senses alone are brutish, like some races of the distant barbarians, while
those who are so as a result of disease (e.g. of epilepsy) or of madness are
morbid. Of these characteristics it is possible to have some only at times, and
not to be mastered by them. e.g. Phalaris may have restrained a desire to eat
the flesh of a child or an appetite for unnatural sexual pleasure; but it is
also possible to be mastered, not merely to have the feelings. Thus, as the
wickedness which is on the human level is called wickedness simply, while that
which is not is called wickedness not simply but with the qualification
'brutish' or 'morbid', in the same way it is plain that some incontinence is
brutish and some morbid, while only that which corresponds to human
self-indulgence is incontinence simply.
That incontinence and continence, then, are concerned only with the same
objects as selfindulgence and temperance and that what is concerned with other
objects is a type distinct from incontinence, and called incontinence by a
metaphor and not simply, is plain.
6
That incontinence in respect of anger is less
disgraceful than that in respect of the appetites is what we will now proceed
to see. (1) Anger seems to listen to argument to some extent, but to mishear
it, as do hasty servants who run out before they have heard the whole of what
one says, and then muddle the order, or as dogs bark if there is but a knock at
the door, before looking to see if it is a friend; so anger by reason of the
warmth and hastiness of its nature, though it hears, does not hear an order,
and springs to take revenge. For argument or imagination informs us that we
have been insulted or slighted, and anger, reasoning as it were that anything
like this must be fought against, boils up straightway; while appetite, if
argument or perception merely says that an object is pleasant, springs to the
enjoyment of it. Therefore anger obeys the argument in a sense, but appetite
does not. It is therefore more disgraceful; for the man who is incontinent in
respect of anger is in a sense conquered by argument, while the other is
conquered by appetite and not by argument.
(2) Further, we pardon people more easily for following natural desires,
since we pardon them more easily for following such appetites as are common to
all men, and in so far as they are common; now anger and bad temper are more
natural than the appetites for excess, i.e. for unnecessary objects. Take for
instance the man who defended himself on the charge of striking his father by
saying 'yes, but he struck his father, and he struck his, and' (pointing to his
child) 'this boy will strike me when he is a man; it runs in the family'; or
the man who when he was being dragged along by his son bade him stop at the
doorway, since he himself had dragged his father only as far as that. (2) Further, those who are more given to
plotting against others are more criminal. Now a passionate man is not given to
plotting, nor is anger itself-it is open; but the nature of appetite is
illustrated by what the poets call Aphrodite, 'guile-weaving daughter of
Cyprus', and by Homer's words about her 'embroidered girdle':
And the whisper of wooing is there, Whose subtlety stealeth the wits of the
wise, how prudent soe'er.
Therefore
if this form of incontinence is more criminal and disgraceful than that in
respect of anger, it is both incontinence without qualification and in a sense
vice. (4) Further, no one commits
wanton outrage with a feeling of pain, but every one who acts in anger acts
with pain, while the man who commits outrage acts with pleasure. If, then,
those acts at which it is most just to be angry are more criminal than others,
the incontinence which is due to appetite is the more criminal; for there is no
wanton outrage involved in anger.
Plainly, then, the incontinence concerned with appetite is more
disgraceful than that concerned with anger, and continence and incontinence are
concerned with bodily appetites and pleasures; but we must grasp the
differences among the latter themselves. For, as has been said at the
beginning, some are human and natural both in kind and in magnitude, others are
brutish, and others are due to organic injuries and diseases. Only with the
first of these are temperance and self-indulgence concerned; this is why we
call the lower animals neither temperate nor self-indulgent except by a
metaphor, and only if some one race of animals exceeds another as a whole in
wantonness, destructiveness, and omnivorous greed; these have no power of
choice or calculation, but they are departures from the natural norm, as, among
men, madmen are. Now brutishness is a less evil than vice, though more
alarming; for it is not that the better part has been perverted, as in
man,-they have no better part. Thus it is like comparing a lifeless thing with
a living in respect of badness; for the badness of that which has no
originative source of movement is always less hurtful, and reason is an
originative source. Thus it is like comparing injustice in the abstract with an
unjust man. Each is in some sense worse; for a bad man will do ten thousand
times as much evil as a brute.
7
With regard to the pleasures and pains and
appetites and aversions arising through touch and taste, to which both
self-indulgence and temperance were formerly narrowed down, it possible to be
in such a state as to be defeated even by those of them which most people
master, or to master even those by which most people are defeated; among these
possibilities, those relating to pleasures are incontinence and continence,
those relating to pains softness and endurance. The state of most people is
intermediate, even if they lean more towards the worse states. Now, since some pleasures are necessary
while others are not, and are necessary up to a point while the excesses of
them are not, nor the deficiencies, and this is equally true of appetites and
pains, the man who pursues the excesses of things pleasant, or pursues to
excess necessary objects, and does so by choice, for their own sake and not at
all for the sake of any result distinct from them, is self-indulgent; for such
a man is of necessity unlikely to repent, and therefore incurable, since a man
who cannot repent cannot be cured. The man who is deficient in his pursuit of
them is the opposite of self-indulgent; the man who is intermediate is
temperate. Similarly, there is the man who avoids bodily pains not because he
is defeated by them but by choice. (Of those who do not choose such acts, one
kind of man is led to them as a result of the pleasure involved, another
because he avoids the pain arising from the appetite, so that these types
differ from one another. Now any one would think worse of a man with no
appetite or with weak appetite were he to do something disgraceful, than if he
did it under the influence of powerful appetite, and worse of him if he struck
a blow not in anger than if he did it in anger; for what would he have done if
he had been strongly affected? This is why the self-indulgent man is worse than
the incontinent.) of the states named, then, the latter is rather a kind of
softness; the former is self-indulgence. While to the incontinent man is
opposed the continent, to the soft is opposed the man of endurance; for
endurance consists in resisting, while continence consists in conquering, and
resisting and conquering are different, as not being beaten is different from
winning; this is why continence is also more worthy of choice than endurance.
Now the man who is defective in respect of resistance to the things which most
men both resist and resist successfully is soft and effeminate; for effeminacy
too is a kind of softness; such a man trails his cloak to avoid the pain of
lifting it, and plays the invalid without thinking himself wretched, though the
man he imitates is a wretched man. The
case is similar with regard to continence and incontinence. For if a man is defeated
by violent and excessive pleasures or pains, there is nothing wonderful in
that; indeed we are ready to pardon him if he has resisted, as Theodectes'
Philoctetes does when bitten by the snake, or Carcinus' Cercyon in the Alope,
and as people who try to restrain their laughter burst out into a guffaw, as
happened to Xenophantus. But it is surprising if a man is defeated by and
cannot resist pleasures or pains which most men can hold out against, when this
is not due to heredity or disease, like the softness that is hereditary with
the kings of the Scythians, or that which distinguishes the female sex from the
male. The lover of amusement, too, is
thought to be self-indulgent, but is really soft. For amusement is a
relaxation, since it is a rest from work; and the lover of amusement is one of
the people who go to excess in this. Of
incontinence one kind is impetuosity, another weakness. For some men after
deliberating fail, owing to their emotion, to stand by the conclusions of their
deliberation, others because they have not deliberated are led by their
emotion; since some men (just as people who first tickle others are not tickled
themselves), if they have first perceived and seen what is coming and have
first roused themselves and their calculative faculty, are not defeated by
their emotion, whether it be pleasant or painful. It is keen and excitable
people that suffer especially from the impetuous form of incontinence; for the
former by reason of their quickness and the latter by reason of the violence of
their passions do not await the argument, because they are apt to follow their
imagination.
8
The self-indulgent man, as was said, is not
apt to repent; for he stands by his choice; but incontinent man is likely to
repent. This is why the position is not as it was expressed in the formulation
of the problem, but the selfindulgent man is incurable and the incontinent man
curable; for wickedness is like a disease such as dropsy or consumption, while
incontinence is like epilepsy; the former is a permanent, the latter an
intermittent badness. And generally incontinence and vice are different in
kind; vice is unconscious of itself, incontinence is not (of incontinent men
themselves, those who become temporarily beside themselves are better than
those who have the rational principle but do not abide by it, since the latter
are defeated by a weaker passion, and do not act without previous deliberation
like the others); for the incontinent man is like the people who get drunk
quickly and on little wine, i.e. on less than most people. Evidently, then, incontinence is not vice
(though perhaps it is so in a qualified sense); for incontinence is contrary to
choice while vice is in accordance with choice; not but what they are similar
in respect of the actions they lead to; as in the saying of Demodocus about the
Milesians, 'the Milesians are not without sense, but they do the things that
senseless people do', so too incontinent people are not criminal, but they will
do criminal acts. Now, since the
incontinent man is apt to pursue, not on conviction, bodily pleasures that are
excessive and contrary to the right rule, while the self-indulgent man is
convinced because he is the sort of man to pursue them, it is on the contrary
the former that is easily persuaded to change his mind, while the latter is
not. For virtue and vice respectively preserve and destroy the first principle,
and in actions the final cause is the first principle, as the hypotheses are in
mathematics; neither in that case is it argument that teaches the first
principles, nor is it so here-virtue either natural or produced by habituation
is what teaches right opinion about the first principle. Such a man as this,
then, is temperate; his contrary is the self-indulgent. But there is a sort of man who is carried
away as a result of passion and contrary to the right rule-a man whom passion
masters so that he does not act according to the right rule, but does not
master to the extent of making him ready to believe that he ought to pursue
such pleasures without reserve; this is the incontinent man, who is better than
the self-indulgent man, and not bad without qualification; for the best thing
in him, the first principle, is preserved. And contrary to him is another kind
of man, he who abides by his convictions and is not carried away, at least as a
result of passion. It is evident from these considerations that the latter is a
good state and the former a bad one.
9
Is the man continent who abides by any and
every rule and any and every choice, or the man who abides by the right choice,
and is he incontinent who abandons any and every choice and any and every rule,
or he who abandons the rule that is not false and the choice that is right;
this is how we put it before in our statement of the problem. Or is it
incidentally any and every choice but per se the true rule and the right choice
by which the one abides and the other does not? If any one chooses or pursues
this for the sake of that, per se he pursues and chooses the latter, but
incidentally the former. But when we speak without qualification we mean what
is per se. Therefore in a sense the one abides by, and the other abandons, any
and every opinion; but without qualification, the true opinion. There are some who are apt to abide by their
opinion, who are called strong-headed, viz. those who are hard to persuade in
the first instance and are not easily persuaded to change; these have in them
something like the continent man, as the prodigal is in a way like the liberal
man and the rash man like the confident man; but they are different in many
respects. For it is to passion and appetite that the one will not yield, since
on occasion the continent man will be easy to persuade; but it is to argument
that the others refuse to yield, for they do form appetites and many of them
are led by their pleasures. Now the people who are strong-headed are the
opinionated, the ignorant, and the boorish-the opinionated being influenced by
pleasure and pain; for they delight in the victory they gain if they are not
persuaded to change, and are pained if their decisions become null and void as
decrees sometimes do; so that they are liker the incontinent than the continent
man. But there are some who fail to
abide by their resolutions, not as a result of incontinence, e.g. Neoptolemus
in Sophocles' Philoctetes; yet it was for the sake of pleasure that he did not
stand fast-but a noble pleasure; for telling the truth was noble to him, but he
had been persuaded by Odysseus to tell the lie. For not every one who does anything
for the sake of pleasure is either self-indulgent or bad or incontinent, but he
who does it for a disgraceful pleasure.
Since there is also a sort of man who takes less delight than he should
in bodily things, and does not abide by the rule, he who is intermediate
between him and the incontinent man is the continent man; for the incontinent
man fails to abide by the rule because he delights too much in them, and this
man because he delights in them too little; while the continent man abides by
the rule and does not change on either account. Now if continence is good, both
the contrary states must be bad, as they actually appear to be; but because the
other extreme is seen in few people and seldom, as temperance is thought to be
contrary only to self-indulgence, so is continence to incontinence. Since many names are applied analogically,
it is by analogy that we have come to speak of the 'continence' the temperate
man; for both the continent man and the temperate man are such as to do nothing
contrary to the rule for the sake of the bodily pleasures, but the former has
and the latter has not bad appetites, and the latter is such as not to feel
pleasure contrary to the rule, while the former is such as to feel pleasure but
not to be led by it. And the incontinent and the self-indulgent man are also
like another; they are different, but both pursue bodily pleasures- the latter,
however, also thinking that he ought to do so, while the former does not think
this.
10
Nor can the same man have practical wisdom
and be incontinent; for it has been shown' that a man is at the same time
practically wise, and good in respect of character. Further, a man has
practical wisdom not by knowing only but by being able to act; but the
incontinent man is unable to act-there is, however, nothing to prevent a clever
man from being incontinent; this is why it is sometimes actually thought that
some people have practical wisdom but are incontinent, viz. because cleverness
and practical wisdom differ in the way we have described in our first
discussions, and are near together in respect of their reasoning, but differ in
respect of their purpose-nor yet is the incontinent man like the man who knows
and is contemplating a truth, but like the man who is asleep or drunk. And he acts
willingly (for he acts in a sense with knowledge both of what he does and of
the end to which he does it), but is not wicked, since his purpose is good; so
that he is half-wicked. And he is not a criminal; for he does not act of malice
aforethought; of the two types of incontinent man the one does not abide by the
conclusions of his deliberation, while the excitable man does not deliberate at
all. And thus the incontinent man like a city which passes all the right
decrees and has good laws, but makes no use of them, as in Anaxandrides'
jesting remark,
The city willed it, that cares nought for
laws;
but
the wicked man is like a city that uses its laws, but has wicked laws to
use. Now incontinence and continence
are concerned with that which is in excess of the state characteristic of most
men; for the continent man abides by his resolutions more and the incontinent
man less than most men can. Of the
forms of incontinence, that of excitable people is more curable than that of
those who deliberate but do not abide by their decisions, and those who are
incontinent through habituation are more curable than those in whom
incontinence is innate; for it is easier to change a habit than to change one's
nature; even habit is hard to change just because it is like nature, as Evenus
says:
I say that habit's but a long practice,
friend, And this becomes men's nature
in the end.
We have now stated what continence,
incontinence, endurance, and softness are, and how these states are related to
each other.
11
The study of pleasure and pain belongs to the
province of the political philosopher; for he is the architect of the end, with
a view to which we call one thing bad and another good without qualification.
Further, it is one of our necessary tasks to consider them; for not only did we
lay it down that moral virtue and vice are concerned with pains and pleasures,
but most people say that happiness involves pleasure; this is why the blessed
man is called by a name derived from a word meaning enjoyment. Now (1) some people think that no pleasure
is a good, either in itself or incidentally, since the good and pleasure are
not the same; (2) others think that some pleasures are good but that most are
bad. (3) Again there is a third view, that even if all pleasures are good, yet
the best thing in the world cannot be pleasure. (1) The reasons given for the
view that pleasure is not a good at all are (a) that every pleasure is a
perceptible process to a natural state, and that no process is of the same kind
as its end, e.g. no process of building of the same kind as a house. (b) A
temperate man avoids pleasures. (c) A man of practical wisdom pursues what is
free from pain, not what is pleasant. (d) The pleasures are a hindrance to
thought, and the more so the more one delights in them, e.g. in sexual
pleasure; for no one could think of anything while absorbed in this. (e) There
is no art of pleasure; but every good is the product of some art. (f) Children
and the brutes pursue pleasures. (2) The reasons for the view that not all
pleasures are good are that (a) there are pleasures that are actually base and
objects of reproach, and (b) there are harmful pleasures; for some pleasant
things are unhealthy. (3) The reason for the view that the best thing in the
world is not pleasure is that pleasure is not an end but a process.
12
These are pretty much the things that are
said. That it does not follow from these grounds that pleasure is not a good,
or even the chief good, is plain from the following considerations. (A) (a)
First, since that which is good may be so in either of two senses (one thing
good simply and another good for a particular person), natural constitutions
and states of being, and therefore also the corresponding movements and
processes, will be correspondingly divisible. Of those which are thought to be
bad some will be bad if taken without qualification but not bad for a
particular person, but worthy of his choice, and some will not be worthy of
choice even for a particular person, but only at a particular time and for a
short period, though not without qualification; while others are not even
pleasures, but seem to be so, viz. all those which involve pain and whose end
is curative, e.g. the processes that go on in sick persons. (b) Further, one kind of good being activity
and another being state, the processes that restore us to our natural state are
only incidentally pleasant; for that matter the activity at work in the
appetites for them is the activity of so much of our state and nature as has
remained unimpaired; for there are actually pleasures that involve no pain or
appetite (e.g. those of contemplation), the nature in such a case not being
defective at all. That the others are incidental is indicated by the fact that
men do not enjoy the same pleasant objects when their nature is in its settled
state as they do when it is being replenished, but in the former case they
enjoy the things that are pleasant without qualification, in the latter the
contraries of these as well; for then they enjoy even sharp and bitter things,
none of which is pleasant either by nature or without qualification. The states
they produce, therefore, are not pleasures naturally or without qualification;
for as pleasant things differ, so do the pleasures arising from them. (c) Again, it is not necessary that there
should be something else better than pleasure, as some say the end is better
than the process; for leasures are not processes nor do they all involve
process-they are activities and ends; nor do they arise when we are becoming
something, but when we are exercising some faculty; and not all pleasures have
an end different from themselves, but only the pleasures of persons who are
being led to the perfecting of their nature. This is why it is not right to say
that pleasure is perceptible process, but it should rather be called activity
of the natural state, and instead of 'perceptible' 'unimpeded'. It is thought
by some people to be process just because they think it is in the strict sense
good; for they think that activity is process, which it is not. (B) The view that pleasures are bad because
some pleasant things are unhealthy is like saying that healthy things are bad
because some healthy things are bad for money-making; both are bad in the
respect mentioned, but they are not bad for that reason-indeed, thinking itself
is sometimes injurious to health.
Neither practical wisdom nor any state of being is impeded by the
pleasure arising from it; it is foreign pleasures that impede, for the
pleasures arising from thinking and learning will make us think and learn all
the more. (C) The fact that no pleasure
is the product of any art arises naturally enough; there is no art of any other
activity either, but only of the corresponding faculty; though for that matter
the arts of the perfumer and the cook are thought to be arts of pleasure. (D) The arguments based on the grounds that
the temperate man avoids pleasure and that the man of practical wisdom pursues
the painless life, and that children and the brutes pursue pleasure, are all
refuted by the same consideration. We have pointed out in what sense pleasures
are good without qualification and in what sense some are not good; now both
the brutes and children pursue pleasures of the latter kind (and the man of
practical wisdom pursues tranquil freedom from that kind), viz. those which
imply appetite and pain, i.e. the bodily pleasures (for it is these that are of
this nature) and the excesses of them, in respect of which the self-indulgent
man is self-indulent. This is why the temperate man avoids these pleasures; for
even he has pleasures of his own.
13
But further (E) it is agreed that pain is bad
and to be avoided; for some pain is without qualification bad, and other pain
is bad because it is in some respect an impediment to us. Now the contrary of
that which is to be avoided, qua something to be avoided and bad, is good.
Pleasure, then, is necessarily a good. For the answer of Speusippus, that
pleasure is contrary both to pain and to good, as the greater is contrary both
to the less and to the equal, is not successful; since he would not say that
pleasure is essentially just a species of evil. And (F) if certain pleasures are bad, that does not prevent the
chief good from being some pleasure, just as the chief good may be some form of
knowledge though certain kinds of knowledge are bad. Perhaps it is even
necessary, if each disposition has unimpeded activities, that, whether the
activity (if unimpeded) of all our dispositions or that of some one of them is
happiness, this should be the thing most worthy of our choice; and this
activity is pleasure. Thus the chief good would be some pleasure, though most
pleasures might perhaps be bad without qualification. And for this reason all
men think that the happy life is pleasant and weave pleasure into their ideal
of happiness-and reasonably too; for no activity is perfect when it is impeded,
and happiness is a perfect thing; this is why the happy man needs the goods of
the body and external goods, i.e. those of fortune, viz. in order that he may
not be impeded in these ways. Those who say that the victim on the rack or the
man who falls into great misfortunes is happy if he is good, are, whether they
mean to or not, talking nonsense. Now because we need fortune as well as other things,
some people think good fortune the same thing as happiness; but it is not that,
for even good fortune itself when in excess is an impediment, and perhaps
should then be no longer called good fortune; for its limit is fixed by
reference to happiness. And indeed the
fact that all things, both brutes and men, pursue pleasure is an indication of
its being somehow the chief good:
No voice is wholly lost that many peoples...
But
since no one nature or state either is or is thought the best for all, neither
do all pursue the same pleasure; yet all pursue pleasure. And perhaps they
actually pursue not the pleasure they think they pursue nor that which they
would say they pursue, but the same pleasure; for all things have by nature
something divine in them. But the bodily pleasures have appropriated the name
both because we oftenest steer our course for them and because all men share in
them; thus because they alone are familiar, men think there are no others. It is evident also that if pleasure, i.e.
the activity of our faculties, is not a good, it will not be the case that the
happy man lives a pleasant life; for to what end should he need pleasure, if it
is not a good but the happy man may even live a painful life? For pain is
neither an evil nor a good, if pleasure is not; why then should he avoid it?
Therefore, too, the life of the good man will not be pleasanter than that of
any one else, if his activities are not more pleasant.
14
(G) With regard to the bodily pleasures, those
who say that some pleasures are very much to be chosen, viz. the noble
pleasures, but not the bodily pleasures, i.e. those with which the
self-indulgent man is concerned, must consider why, then, the contrary pains
are bad. For the contrary of bad is good. Are the necessary pleasures good in
the sense in which even that which is not bad is good? Or are they good up to a
point? Is it that where you have states and processes of which there cannot be
too much, there cannot be too much of the corresponding pleasure, and that
where there can be too much of the one there can be too much of the other also?
Now there can be too much of bodily goods, and the bad man is bad by virtue of
pursuing the excess, not by virtue of pursuing the necessary pleasures (for all
men enjoy in some way or other both dainty foods and wines and sexual
intercourse, but not all men do so as they ought). The contrary is the case
with pain; for he does not avoid the excess of it, he avoids it altogether; and
this is peculiar to him, for the alternative to excess of pleasure is not pain,
except to the man who pursues this excess.
Since we should state not only the truth, but also the cause of
error-for this contributes towards producing conviction, since when a
reasonable explanation is given of why the false view appears true, this tends
to produce belief in the true view-therefore we must state why the bodily
pleasures appear the more worthy of choice. (a) Firstly, then, it is because
they expel pain; owing to the excesses of pain that men experience, they pursue
excessive and in general bodily pleasure as being a cure for the pain. Now
curative agencies produce intense feeling-which is the reason why they are
pursued-because they show up against the contrary pain. (Indeed pleasure is thought
not to be good for these two reasons, as has been said, viz. that (a) some of
them are activities belonging to a bad nature-either congenital, as in the case
of a brute, or due to habit, i.e. those of bad men; while (b) others are meant
to cure a defective nature, and it is better to be in a healthy state than to
be getting into it, but these arise during the process of being made perfect
and are therefore only incidentally good.) (b) Further, they are pursued
because of their violence by those who cannot enjoy other pleasures. (At all
events they go out of their way to manufacture thirsts somehow for themselves.
When these are harmless, the practice is irreproachable; when they are hurtful,
it is bad.) For they have nothing else to enjoy, and, besides, a neutral state
is painful to many people because of their nature. For the animal nature is
always in travail, as the students of natural science also testify, saying that
sight and hearing are painful; but we have become used to this, as they maintain.
Similarly, while, in youth, people are, owing to the growth that is going on,
in a situation like that of drunken men, and youth is pleasant, on the other
hand people of excitable nature always need relief; for even their body is ever
in torment owing to its special composition, and they are always under the
influence of violent desire; but pain is driven out both by the contrary
pleasure, and by any chance pleasure if it be strong; and for these reasons
they become self-indulgent and bad. But the pleasures that do not involve pains
do not admit of excess; and these are among the things pleasant by nature and
not incidentally. By things pleasant incidentally I mean those that act as
cures (for because as a result people are cured, through some action of the
part that remains healthy, for this reason the process is thought pleasant); by
things naturally pleasant I mean those that stimulate the action of the healthy
nature. There is no one thing that is
always pleasant, because our nature is not simple but there is another element
in us as well, inasmuch as we are perishable creatures, so that if the one
element does something, this is unnatural to the other nature, and when the two
elements are evenly balanced, what is done seems neither painful nor pleasant;
for if the nature of anything were simple, the same action would always be most
pleasant to it. This is why God always enjoys a single and simple pleasure; for
there is not only an activity of movement but an activity of immobility, and
pleasure is found more in rest than in movement. But 'change in all things is
sweet', as the poet says, because of some vice; for as it is the vicious man
that is changeable, so the nature that needs change is vicious; for it is not
simple nor good. We have now discussed continence
and incontinence, and pleasure and pain, both what each is and in what sense
some of them are good and others bad; it remains to speak of friendship.
BOOK VIII
1
AFTER what we have said, a discussion of
friendship would naturally follow, since it is a virtue or implies virtue, and
is besides most necessary with a view to living. For without friends no one
would choose to live, though he had all other goods; even rich men and those in
possession of office and of dominating power are thought to need friends most
of all; for what is the use of such prosperity without the opportunity of
beneficence, which is exercised chiefly and in its most laudable form towards
friends? Or how can prosperity be guarded and preserved without friends? The greater
it is, the more exposed is it to risk. And in poverty and in other misfortunes
men think friends are the only refuge. It helps the young, too, to keep from
error; it aids older people by ministering to their needs and supplementing the
activities that are failing from weakness; those in the prime of life it
stimulates to noble actions-'two going together'-for with friends men are more
able both to think and to act. Again, parent seems by nature to feel it for
offspring and offspring for parent, not only among men but among birds and
among most animals; it is felt mutually by members of the same race, and
especially by men, whence we praise lovers of their fellowmen. We may even in
our travels how near and dear every man is to every other. Friendship seems too
to hold states together, and lawgivers to care more for it than for justice;
for unanimity seems to be something like friendship, and this they aim at most
of all, and expel faction as their worst enemy; and when men are friends they
have no need of justice, while when they are just they need friendship as well,
and the truest form of justice is thought to be a friendly quality. But it is not only necessary but also noble;
for we praise those who love their friends, and it is thought to be a fine thing
to have many friends; and again we think it is the same people that are good
men and are friends. Not a few things
about friendship are matters of debate. Some define it as a kind of likeness
and say like people are friends, whence come the sayings 'like to like', 'birds
of a feather flock together', and so on; others on the contrary say 'two of a
trade never agree'. On this very question they inquire for deeper and more
physical causes, Euripides saying that 'parched earth loves the rain, and
stately heaven when filled with rain loves to fall to earth', and Heraclitus
that 'it is what opposes that helps' and 'from different tones comes the
fairest tune' and 'all things are produced through strife'; while Empedocles,
as well as others, expresses the opposite view that like aims at like. The
physical problems we may leave alone (for they do not belong to the present
inquiry); let us examine those which are human and involve character and
feeling, e.g. whether friendship can arise between any two people or people
cannot be friends if they are wicked, and whether there is one species of
friendship or more than one. Those who think there is only one because it
admits of degrees have relied on an inadequate indication; for even things
different in species admit of degree. We have discussed this matter
previously.
2
The kinds of friendship may perhaps be
cleared up if we first come to know the object of love. For not everything
seems to be loved but only the lovable, and this is good, pleasant, or useful;
but it would seem to be that by which some good or pleasure is produced that is
useful, so that it is the good and the useful that are lovable as ends. Do men
love, then, the good, or what is good for them? These sometimes clash. So too
with regard to the pleasant. Now it is thought that each loves what is good for
himself, and that the good is without qualification lovable, and what is good
for each man is lovable for him; but each man loves not what is good for him
but what seems good. This however will make no difference; we shall just have
to say that this is 'that which seems lovable'. Now there are three grounds on
which people love; of the love of lifeless objects we do not use the word
'friendship'; for it is not mutual love, nor is there a wishing of good to the
other (for it would surely be ridiculous to wish wine well; if one wishes
anything for it, it is that it may keep, so that one may have it oneself); but
to a friend we say we ought to wish what is good for his sake. But to those who
thus wish good we ascribe only goodwill, if the wish is not reciprocated;
goodwill when it is reciprocal being friendship. Or must we add 'when it is
recognized'? For many people have goodwill to those whom they have not seen but
judge to be good or useful; and one of these might return this feeling. These
people seem to bear goodwill to each other; but how could one call them friends
when they do not know their mutual feelings? To be friends, then, the must be
mutually recognized as bearing goodwill and wishing well to each other for one
of the aforesaid reasons.
3
Now these reasons differ from each other in
kind; so, therefore, do the corresponding forms of love and friendship. There
are therefore three kinds of friendship, equal in number to the things that are
lovable; for with respect to each there is a mutual and recognized love, and
those who love each other wish well to each other in that respect in which they
love one another. Now those who love each other for their utility do not love
each other for themselves but in virtue of some good which they get from each
other. So too with those who love for the sake of pleasure; it is not for their
character that men love ready-witted people, but because they find them
pleasant. Therefore those who love for the sake of utility love for the sake of
what is good for themselves, and those who love for the sake of pleasure do so
for the sake of what is pleasant to themselves, and not in so far as the other
is the person loved but in so far as he is useful or pleasant. And thus these
friendships are only incidental; for it is not as being the man he is that the
loved person is loved, but as providing some good or pleasure. Such
friendships, then, are easily dissolved, if the parties do not remain like
themselves; for if the one party is no longer pleasant or useful the other
ceases to love him. Now the useful is
not permanent but is always changing. Thus when the motive of the friendship is
done away, the friendship is dissolved, inasmuch as it existed only for the
ends in question. This kind of friendship seems to exist chiefly between old
people (for at that age people pursue not the pleasant but the useful) and, of
those who are in their prime or young, between those who pursue utility. And
such people do not live much with each other either; for sometimes they do not
even find each other pleasant; therefore they do not need such companionship
unless they are useful to each other; for they are pleasant to each other only
in so far as they rouse in each other hopes of something good to come. Among
such friendships people also class the friendship of a host and guest. On the
other hand the friendship of young people seems to aim at pleasure; for they
live under the guidance of emotion, and pursue above all what is pleasant to
themselves and what is immediately before them; but with increasing age their
pleasures become different. This is why they quickly become friends and quickly
cease to be so; their friendship changes with the object that is found
pleasant, and such pleasure alters quickly. Young people are amorous too; for
the greater part of the friendship of love depends on emotion and aims at
pleasure; this is why they fall in love and quickly fall out of love, changing
often within a single day. But these people do wish to spend their days and
lives together; for it is thus that they attain the purpose of their
friendship. Perfect friendship is the
friendship of men who are good, and alike in virtue; for these wish well alike
to each other qua good, and they are good themselves. Now those who wish well
to their friends for their sake are most truly friends; for they do this by
reason of own nature and not incidentally; therefore their friendship lasts as
long as they are good-and goodness is an enduring thing. And each is good
without qualification and to his friend, for the good are both good without
qualification and useful to each other. So too they are pleasant; for the good
are pleasant both without qualification and to each other, since to each his
own activities and others like them are pleasurable, and the actions of the
good are the same or like. And such a friendship is as might be expected
permanent, since there meet in it all the qualities that friends should have.
For all friendship is for the sake of good or of pleasure-good or pleasure
either in the abstract or such as will be enjoyed by him who has the friendly
feeling-and is based on a certain resemblance; and to a friendship of good men
all the qualities we have named belong in virtue of the nature of the friends
themselves; for in the case of this kind of friendship the other qualities also
are alike in both friends, and that which is good without qualification is also
without qualification pleasant, and these are the most lovable qualities. Love
and friendship therefore are found most and in their best form between such
men. But it is natural that such
friendships should be infrequent; for such men are rare. Further, such
friendship requires time and familiarity; as the proverb says, men cannot know
each other till they have 'eaten salt together'; nor can they admit each other
to friendship or be friends till each has been found lovable and been trusted
by each. Those who quickly show the marks of friendship to each other wish to
be friends, but are not friends unless they both are lovable and know the fact;
for a wish for friendship may arise quickly, but friendship does not.
4
This kind of friendship, then, is perfect
both in respect of duration and in all other respects, and in it each gets from
each in all respects the same as, or something like what, he gives; which is
what ought to happen between friends. Friendship for the sake of pleasure bears
a resemblance to this kind; for good people too are pleasant to each other. So
too does friendship for the sake of utility; for the good are also useful to
each other. Among men of these inferior sorts too, friendships are most
permanent when the friends get the same thing from each other (e.g. pleasure),
and not only that but also from the same source, as happens between readywitted
people, not as happens between lover and beloved. For these do not take
pleasure in the same things, but the one in seeing the beloved and the other in
receiving attentions from his lover; and when the bloom of youth is passing the
friendship sometimes passes too (for the one finds no pleasure in the sight of
the other, and the other gets no attentions from the first); but many lovers on
the other hand are constant, if familiarity has led them to love each other's
characters, these being alike. But those who exchange not pleasure but utility
in their amour are both less truly friends and less constant. Those who are
friends for the sake of utility part when the advantage is at an end; for they
were lovers not of each other but of profit.
For the sake of pleasure or utility, then, even bad men may be friends
of each other, or good men of bad, or one who is neither good nor bad may be a
friend to any sort of person, but for their own sake clearly only good men can
be friends; for bad men do not delight in each other unless some advantage come
of the relation. The friendship of the
good too and this alone is proof against slander; for it is not easy to trust
any one talk about a man who has long been tested by oneself; and it is among
good men that trust and the feeling that 'he would never wrong me' and all the
other things that are demanded in true friendship are found. In the other kinds
of friendship, however, there is nothing to prevent these evils arising. For
men apply the name of friends even to those whose motive is utility, in which
sense states are said to be friendly (for the alliances of states seem to aim
at advantage), and to those who love each other for the sake of pleasure, in
which sense children are called friends. Therefore we too ought perhaps to call
such people friends, and say that there are several kinds of friendship-firstly
and in the proper sense that of good men qua good, and by analogy the other
kinds; for it is in virtue of something good and something akin to what is
found in true friendship that they are friends, since even the pleasant is good
for the lovers of pleasure. But these two kinds of friendship are not often
united, nor do the same people become friends for the sake of utility and of
pleasure; for things that are only incidentally connected are not often coupled
together. Friendship being divided into
these kinds, bad men will be friends for the sake of pleasure or of utility,
being in this respect like each other, but good men will be friends for their
own sake, i.e. in virtue of their goodness. These, then, are friends without
qualification; the others are friends incidentally and through a resemblance to
these.
5
As in regard to the virtues some men are
called good in respect of a state of character, others in respect of an
activity, so too in the case of friendship; for those who live together delight
in each other and confer benefits on each other, but those who are asleep or
locally separated are not performing, but are disposed to perform, the
activities of friendship; distance does not break off the friendship
absolutely, but only the activity of it. But if the absence is lasting, it
seems actually to make men forget their friendship; hence the saying 'out of
sight, out of mind'. Neither old people nor sour people seem to make friends
easily; for there is little that is pleasant in them, and no one can spend his
days with one whose company is painful, or not pleasant, since nature seems
above all to avoid the painful and to aim at the pleasant. Those, however, who
approve of each other but do not live together seem to be well-disposed rather
than actual friends. For there is nothing so characteristic of friends as
living together (since while it people who are in need that desire benefits,
even those who are supremely happy desire to spend their days together; for
solitude suits such people least of all); but people cannot live together if
they are not pleasant and do not enjoy the same things, as friends who are
companions seem to do. The truest
friendship, then, is that of the good, as we have frequently said; for that
which is without qualification good or pleasant seems to be lovable and
desirable, and for each person that which is good or pleasant to him; and the
good man is lovable and desirable to the good man for both these reasons. Now
it looks as if love were a feeling, friendship a state of character; for love
may be felt just as much towards lifeless things, but mutual love involves
choice and choice springs from a state of character; and men wish well to those
whom they love, for their sake, not as a result of feeling but as a result of a
state of character. And in loving a friend men love what is good for
themselves; for the good man in becoming a friend becomes a good to his friend.
Each, then, both loves what is good for himself, and makes an equal return in
goodwill and in pleasantness; for friendship is said to be equality, and both
of these are found most in the friendship of the good.
6
Between sour and elderly people friendship
arises less readily, inasmuch as they are less good-tempered and enjoy
companionship less; for these are thou to be the greatest marks of friendship
productive of it. This is why, while men become friends quickly, old men do
not; it is because men do not become friends with those in whom they do not
delight; and similarly sour people do not quickly make friends either. But such
men may bear goodwill to each other; for they wish one another well and aid one
another in need; but they are hardly friends because they do not spend their
days together nor delight in each other, and these are thought the greatest
marks of friendship. One cannot be a
friend to many people in the sense of having friendship of the perfect type
with them, just as one cannot be in love with many people at once (for love is
a sort of excess of feeling, and it is the nature of such only to be felt
towards one person); and it is not easy for many people at the same time to
please the same person very greatly, or perhaps even to be good in his eyes.
One must, too, acquire some experience of the other person and become familiar
with him, and that is very hard. But with a view to utility or pleasure it is
possible that many people should please one; for many people are useful or
pleasant, and these services take little time.
Of these two kinds that which is for the sake of pleasure is the more
like friendship, when both parties get the same things from each other and
delight in each other or in the things, as in the friendships of the young; for
generosity is more found in such friendships. Friendship based on utility is
for the commercially minded. People who are supremely happy, too, have no need
of useful friends, but do need pleasant friends; for they wish to live with some
one and, though they can endure for a short time what is painful, no one could
put up with it continuously, nor even with the Good itself if it were painful
to him; this is why they look out for friends who are pleasant. Perhaps they
should look out for friends who, being pleasant, are also good, and good for
them too; for so they will have all the characteristics that friends should
have. People in positions of authority
seem to have friends who fall into distinct classes; some people are useful to
them and others are pleasant, but the same people are rarely both; for they
seek neither those whose pleasantness is accompanied by virtue nor those whose
utility is with a view to noble objects, but in their desire for pleasure they
seek for ready-witted people, and their other friends they choose as being
clever at doing what they are told, and these characteristics are rarely
combined. Now we have said that the good man is at the same time pleasant and
useful; but such a man does not become the friend of one who surpasses him in
station, unless he is surpassed also in virtue; if this is not so, he does not
establish equality by being proportionally exceeded in both respects. But
people who surpass him in both respects are not so easy to find. However that may be, the aforesaid
friendships involve equality; for the friends get the same things from one
another and wish the same things for one another, or exchange one thing for
another, e.g. pleasure for utility; we have said, however, that they are both
less truly friendships and less permanent.
But it is from their likeness and their unlikeness to the same thing
that they are thought both to be and not to be friendships. It is by their
likeness to the friendship of virtue that they seem to be friendships (for one
of them involves pleasure and the other utility, and these characteristics
belong to the friendship of virtue as well); while it is because the friendship
of virtue is proof against slander and permanent, while these quickly change
(besides differing from the former in many other respects), that they appear
not to be friendships; i.e. it is because of their unlikeness to the friendship
of virtue.
7
But there is another kind of friendship, viz.
that which involves an inequality between the parties, e.g. that of father to
son and in general of elder to younger, that of man to wife and in general that
of ruler to subject. And these friendships differ also from each other; for it
is not the same that exists between parents and children and between rulers and
subjects, nor is even that of father to son the same as that of son to father,
nor that of husband to wife the same as that of wife to husband. For the virtue
and the function of each of these is different, and so are the reasons for
which they love; the love and the friendship are therefore different also. Each
party, then, neither gets the same from the other, nor ought to seek it; but
when children render to parents what they ought to render to those who brought
them into the world, and parents render what they should to their children, the
friendship of such persons will be abiding and excellent. In all friendships
implying inequality the love also should be proportional, i.e. the better
should be more loved than he loves, and so should the more useful, and
similarly in each of the other cases; for when the love is in proportion to the
merit of the parties, then in a sense arises equality, which is certainly held
to be characteristic of friendship. But
equality does not seem to take the same form in acts of justice and in
friendship; for in acts of justice what is equal in the primary sense is that
which is in proportion to merit, while quantitative equality is secondary, but
in friendship quantitative equality is primary and proportion to merit secondary.
This becomes clear if there is a great interval in respect of virtue or vice or
wealth or anything else between the parties; for then they are no longer
friends, and do not even expect to be so. And this is most manifest in the case
of the gods; for they surpass us most decisively in all good things. But it is
clear also in the case of kings; for with them, too, men who are much their
inferiors do not expect to be friends; nor do men of no account expect to be
friends with the best or wisest men. In such cases it is not possible to define
exactly up to what point friends can remain friends; for much can be taken away
and friendship remain, but when one party is removed to a great distance, as
God is, the possibility of friendship ceases. This is in fact the origin of the
question whether friends really wish for their friends the greatest goods, e.g.
that of being gods; since in that case their friends will no longer be friends
to them, and therefore will not be good things for them (for friends are good
things). The answer is that if we were right in saying that friend wishes good
to friend for his sake, his friend must remain the sort of being he is,
whatever that may be; therefore it is for him oily so long as he remains a man
that he will wish the greatest goods. But perhaps not all the greatest goods;
for it is for himself most of all that each man wishes what is good.
8
Most people seem, owing to ambition, to wish
to be loved rather than to love; which is why most men love flattery; for the
flatterer is a friend in an inferior position, or pretends to be such and to
love more than he is loved; and being loved seems to be akin to being honoured,
and this is what most people aim at. But it seems to be not for its own sake
that people choose honour, but incidentally. For most people enjoy being
honoured by those in positions of authority because of their hopes (for they
think that if they want anything they will get it from them; and therefore they
delight in honour as a token of favour to come); while those who desire honour
from good men, and men who know, are aiming at confirming their own opinion of
themselves; they delight in honour, therefore, because they believe in their
own goodness on the strength of the judgement of those who speak about them. In
being loved, on the other hand, people delight for its own sake; whence it
would seem to be better than being honoured, and friendship to be desirable in
itself. But it seems to lie in loving rather than in being loved, as is
indicated by the delight mothers take in loving; for some mothers hand over
their children to be brought up, and so long as they know their fate they love
them and do not seek to be loved in return (if they cannot have both), but seem
to be satisfied if they see them prospering; and they themselves love their
children even if these owing to their ignorance give them nothing of a mother's
due. Now since friendship depends more on loving, and it is those who love
their friends that are praised, loving seems to be the characteristic virtue of
friends, so that it is only those in whom this is found in due measure that are
lasting friends, and only their friendship that endures. It is in this way more than any other that
even unequals can be friends; they can be equalized. Now equality and likeness
are friendship, and especially the likeness of those who are like in virtue;
for being steadfast in themselves they hold fast to each other, and neither ask
nor give base services, but (one may say) even prevent them; for it is
characteristic of good men neither to go wrong themselves nor to let their
friends do so. But wicked men have no steadfastness (for they do not remain
even like to themselves), but become friends for a short time because they
delight in each other's wickedness. Friends who are useful or pleasant last
longer; i.e. as long as they provide each other with enjoyments or advantages.
Friendship for utility's sake seems to be that which most easily exists between
contraries, e.g. between poor and rich, between ignorant and learned; for what
a man actually lacks he aims at, and one gives something else in return. But
under this head, too, might bring lover and beloved, beautiful and ugly. This
is why lovers sometimes seem ridiculous, when they demand to be loved as they
love; if they are equally lovable their claim can perhaps be justified, but
when they have nothing lovable about them it is ridiculous. Perhaps, however,
contrary does not even aim at contrary by its own nature, but only
incidentally, the desire being for what is intermediate; for that is what is
good, e.g. it is good for the dry not to become wet but to come to the
intermediate state, and similarly with the hot and in all other cases. These
subjects we may dismiss; for they are indeed somewhat foreign to our inquiry.
9
Friendship and justice seem, as we have said
at the outset of our discussion, to be concerned with the same objects and
exhibited between the same persons. For in every community there is thought to
be some form of justice, and friendship too; at least men address as friends
their fellow-voyagers and fellowsoldiers, and so too those associated with them
in any other kind of community. And the extent of their association is the
extent of their friendship, as it is the extent to which justice exists between
them. And the proverb 'what friends have is common property' expresses the
truth; for friendship depends on community. Now brothers and comrades have all
things in common, but the others to whom we have referred have definite things
in common-some more things, others fewer; for of friendships, too, some are
more and others less truly friendships. And the claims of justice differ too;
the duties of parents to children, and those of brothers to each other are not
the same, nor those of comrades and those of fellow-citizens, and so, too, with
the other kinds of friendship. There is a difference, therefore, also between
the acts that are unjust towards each of these classes of associates, and the
injustice increases by being exhibited towards those who are friends in a
fuller sense; e.g. it is a more terrible thing to defraud a comrade than a
fellow-citizen, more terrible not to help a brother than a stranger, and more
terrible to wound a father than any one else. And the demands of justice also
seem to increase with the intensity of the friendship, which implies that
friendship and justice exist between the same persons and have an equal
extension. Now all forms of community
are like parts of the political community; for men journey together with a view
to some particular advantage, and to provide something that they need for the
purposes of life; and it is for the sake of advantage that the political
community too seems both to have come together originally and to endure, for
this is what legislators aim at, and they call just that which is to the common
advantage. Now the other communities aim at advantage bit by bit, e.g. sailors
at what is advantageous on a voyage with a view to making money or something of
the kind, fellow-soldiers at what is advantageous in war, whether it is wealth
or victory or the taking of a city that they seek, and members of tribes and
demes act similarly (Some communities seem to arise for the sake or pleasure,
viz. religious guilds and social clubs; for these exist respectively for the
sake of offering sacrifice and of companionship. But all these seem to fall
under the political community; for it aims not at present advantage but at what
is advantageous for life as a whole), offering sacrifices and arranging
gatherings for the purpose, and assigning honours to the gods, and providing
pleasant relaxations for themselves. For the ancient sacrifices and gatherings
seem to take place after the harvest as a sort of firstfruits, because it was
at these seasons that people had most leisure. All the communities, then, seem
to be parts of the political community; and the particular kinds friendship
will correspond to the particular kinds of community.
10
There are three kinds of constitution, and an
equal number of deviation-forms--perversions, as it were, of them. The
constitutions are monarchy, aristocracy, and thirdly that which is based on a
property qualification, which it seems appropriate to call timocratic, though
most people are wont to call it polity. The best of these is monarchy, the
worst timocracy. The deviation from monarchy is tyrany; for both are forms of
one-man rule, but there is the greatest difference between them; the tyrant
looks to his own advantage, the king to that of his subjects. For a man is not
a king unless he is sufficient to himself and excels his subjects in all good
things; and such a man needs nothing further; therefore he will not look to his
own interests but to those of his subjects; for a king who is not like that
would be a mere titular king. Now tyranny is the very contrary of this; the
tyrant pursues his own good. And it is clearer in the case of tyranny that it
is the worst deviation-form; but it is the contrary of the best that is worst.
Monarchy passes over into tyranny; for tyranny is the evil form of one-man rule
and the bad king becomes a tyrant. Aristocracy passes over into oligarchy by
the badness of the rulers, who distribute contrary to equity what belongs to
the city-all or most of the good things to themselves, and office always to the
same people, paying most regard to wealth; thus the rulers are few and are bad
men instead of the most worthy. Timocracy passes over into democracy; for these
are coterminous, since it is the ideal even of timocracy to be the rule of the
majority, and all who have the property qualification count as equal. Democracy
is the least bad of the deviations; for in its case the form of constitution is
but a slight deviation. These then are the changes to which constitutions are
most subject; for these are the smallest and easiest transitions. One may find resemblances to the
constitutions and, as it were, patterns of them even in households. For the
association of a father with his sons bears the form of monarchy, since the
father cares for his children; and this is why Homer calls Zeus 'father'; it is
the ideal of monarchy to be paternal rule. But among the Persians the rule of
the father is tyrannical; they use their sons as slaves. Tyrannical too is the
rule of a master over slaves; for it is the advantage of the master that is
brought about in it. Now this seems to be a correct form of government, but the
Persian type is perverted; for the modes of rule appropriate to different
relations are diverse. The association of man and wife seems to be aristocratic;
for the man rules in accordance with his worth, and in those matters in which a
man should rule, but the matters that befit a woman he hands over to her. If
the man rules in everything the relation passes over into oligarchy; for in
doing so he is not acting in accordance with their respective worth, and not
ruling in virtue of his superiority. Sometimes, however, women rule, because
they are heiresses; so their rule is not in virtue of excellence but due to
wealth and power, as in oligarchies. The association of brothers is like
timocracy; for they are equal, except in so far as they differ in age; hence if
they differ much in age, the friendship is no longer of the fraternal type.
Democracy is found chiefly in masterless dwellings (for here every one is on an
equality), and in those in which the ruler is weak and every one has licence to
do as he pleases.
11
Each of the constitutions may be seen to
involve friendship just in so far as it involves justice. The friendship
between a king and his subjects depends on an excess of benefits conferred; for
he confers benefits on his subjects if being a good man he cares for them with
a view to their well-being, as a shepherd does for his sheep (whence Homer
called Agamemnon 'shepherd of the peoples'). Such too is the friendship of a
father, though this exceeds the other in the greatness of the benefits
conferred; for he is responsible for the existence of his children, which is
thought the greatest good, and for their nurture and upbringing. These things are ascribed to ancestors as
well. Further, by nature a father tends to rule over his sons, ancestors over
descendants, a king over his subjects. These friendships imply superiority of
one party over the other, which is why ancestors are honoured. The justice
therefore that exists between persons so related is not the same on both sides
but is in every case proportioned to merit; for that is true of the friendship
as well. The friendship of man and wife, again, is the same that is found in an
aristocracy; for it is in accordance with virtue the better gets more of what
is good, and each gets what befits him; and so, too, with the justice in these
relations. The friendship of brothers is like that of comrades; for they are
equal and of like age, and such persons are for the most part like in their
feelings and their character. Like this, too, is the friendship appropriate to
timocratic government; for in such a constitution the ideal is for the citizens
to be equal and fair; therefore rule is taken in turn, and on equal terms; and
the friendship appropriate here will correspond. But in the deviation-forms, as justice hardly exists, so too does
friendship. It exists least in the worst form; in tyranny there is little or no
friendship. For where there is nothing common to ruler and ruled, there is not
friendship either, since there is not justice; e.g. between craftsman and tool,
soul and body, master and slave; the latter in each case is benefited by that
which uses it, but there is no friendship nor justice towards lifeless things.
But neither is there friendship towards a horse or an ox, nor to a slave qua
slave. For there is nothing common to the two parties; the slave is a living
tool and the tool a lifeless slave. Qua slave then, one cannot be friends with
him. But qua man one can; for there seems to be some justice between any man
and any other who can share in a system of law or be a party to an agreement;
therefore there can also be friendship with him in so far as he is a man.
Therefore while in tyrannies friendship and justice hardly exist, in
democracies they exist more fully; for where the citizens are equal they have
much in common.
12
Every form of friendship, then, involves
association, as has been said. One might, however, mark off from the rest both
the friendship of kindred and that of comrades. Those of fellow-citizens,
fellow-tribesmen, fellow-voyagers, and the like are more like mere friendships
of association; for they seem to rest on a sort of compact. With them we might
class the friendship of host and guest. The friendship of kinsmen itself, while
it seems to be of many kinds, appears to depend in every case on parental
friendship; for parents love their children as being a part of themselves, and
children their parents as being something originating from them. Now (1) arents
know their offspring better than there children know that they are their
children, and (2) the originator feels his offspring to be his own more than
the offspring do their begetter; for the product belongs to the producer (e.g.
a tooth or hair or anything else to him whose it is), but the producer does not
belong to the product, or belongs in a less degree. And (3) the length of time
produces the same result; parents love their children as soon as these are
born, but children love their parents only after time has elapsed and they have
acquired understanding or the power of discrimination by the senses. From these
considerations it is also plain why mothers love more than fathers do. Parents,
then, love their children as themselves (for their issue are by virtue of their
separate existence a sort of other selves), while children love their parents
as being born of them, and brothers love each other as being born of the same
parents; for their identity with them makes them identical with each other
(which is the reason why people talk of 'the same blood', 'the same stock', and
so on). They are, therefore, in a sense the same thing, though in separate
individuals. Two things that contribute greatly to friendship are a common
upbringing and similarity of age; for 'two of an age take to each other', and
people brought up together tend to be comrades; whence the friendship of
brothers is akin to that of comrades. And cousins and other kinsmen are bound
up together by derivation from brothers, viz. by being derived from the same
parents. They come to be closer together or farther apart by virtue of the
nearness or distance of the original ancestor.
The friendship of children to parents, and of men to gods, is a relation
to them as to something good and superior; for they have conferred the greatest
benefits, since they are the causes of their being and of their nourishment,
and of their education from their birth; and this kind of friendship possesses
pleasantness and utility also, more than that of strangers, inasmuch as their
life is lived more in common. The friendship of brothers has the
characteristics found in that of comrades (and especially when these are good),
and in general between people who are like each other, inasmuch as they belong
more to each other and start with a love for each other from their very birth,
and inasmuch as those born of the same parents and brought up together and
similarly educated are more akin in character; and the test of time has been
applied most fully and convincingly in their case. Between other kinsmen friendly relations are found in due
proportion. Between man and wife friendship seems to exist by nature; for man
is naturally inclined to form couples-even more than to form cities, inasmuch
as the household is earlier and more necessary than the city, and reproduction
is more common to man with the animals. With the other animals the union
extends only to this point, but human beings live together not only for the
sake of reproduction but also for the various purposes of life; for from the
start the functions are divided, and those of man and woman are different; so
they help each other by throwing their peculiar gifts into the common stock. It
is for these reasons that both utility and pleasure seem to be found in this
kind of friendship. But this friendship may be based also on virtue, if the
parties are good; for each has its own virtue and they will delight in the
fact. And children seem to be a bond of union (which is the reason why childless
people part more easily); for children are a good common to both and what is
common holds them together. How man and
wife and in general friend and friend ought mutually to behave seems to be the
same question as how it is just for them to behave; for a man does not seem to
have the same duties to a friend, a stranger, a comrade, and a
schoolfellow.
13
There are three kinds of friendship, as we
said at the outset of our inquiry, and in respect of each some are friends on an
equality and others by virtue of a superiority (for not only can equally good
men become friends but a better man can make friends with a worse, and
similarly in friendships of pleasure or utility the friends may be equal or
unequal in the benefits they confer). This being so, equals must effect the
required equalization on a basis of equality in love and in all other respects,
while unequals must render what is in proportion to their superiority or
inferiority. Complaints and reproaches arise either only or chiefly in the
friendship of utility, and this is only to be expected. For those who are
friends on the ground of virtue are anxious to do well by each other (since
that is a mark of virtue and of friendship), and between men who are emulating
each other in this there cannot be complaints or quarrels; no one is offended
by a man who loves him and does well by him-if he is a person of nice feeling
he takes his revenge by doing well by the other. And the man who excels the
other in the services he renders will not complain of his friend, since he gets
what he aims at; for each man desires what is good. Nor do complaints arise
much even in friendships of pleasure; for both get at the same time what they
desire, if they enjoy spending their time together; and even a man who
complained of another for not affording him pleasure would seem ridiculous,
since it is in his power not to spend his days with him. But the friendship of utility is full of
complaints; for as they use each other for their own interests they always want
to get the better of the bargain, and think they have got less than they
should, and blame their partners because they do not get all they 'want and
deserve'; and those who do well by others cannot help them as much as those
whom they benefit want. Now it seems
that, as justice is of two kinds, one unwritten and the other legal, one kind
of friendship of utility is moral and the other legal. And so complaints arise
most of all when men do not dissolve the relation in the spirit of the same
type of friendship in which they contracted it. The legal type is that which is
on fixed terms; its purely commercial variety is on the basis of immediate
payment, while the more liberal variety allows time but stipulates for a
definite quid pro quo. In this variety the debt is clear and not ambiguous, but
in the postponement it contains an element of friendliness; and so some states
do not allow suits arising out of such agreements, but think men who have
bargained on a basis of credit ought to accept the consequences. The moral type
is not on fixed terms; it makes a gift, or does whatever it does, as to a
friend; but one expects to receive as much or more, as having not given but
lent; and if a man is worse off when the relation is dissolved than he was when
it was contracted he will complain. This happens because all or most men, while
they wish for what is noble, choose what is advantageous; now it is noble to do
well by another without a view to repayment, but it is the receiving of
benefits that is advantageous. Therefore if we can we should return the
equivalent of what we have received (for we must not make a man our friend
against his will; we must recognize that we were mistaken at the first and took
a benefit from a person we should not have taken it from-since it was not from
a friend, nor from one who did it just for the sake of acting so-and we must
settle up just as if we had been benefited on fixed terms). Indeed, one would
agree to repay if one could (if one could not, even the giver would not have
expected one to do so); therefore if it is possible we must repay. But at the
outset we must consider the man by whom we are being benefited and on what
terms he is acting, in order that we may accept the benefit on these terms, or
else decline it. It is disputable
whether we ought to measure a service by its utility to the receiver and make
the return with a view to that, or by the benevolence of the giver. For those
who have received say they have received from their benefactors what meant
little to the latter and what they might have got from others-minimizing the
service; while the givers, on the contrary, say it was the biggest thing they
had, and what could not have been got from others, and that it was given in
times of danger or similar need. Now if the friendship is one that aims at
utility, surely the advantage to the receiver is the measure. For it is he that
asks for the service, and the other man helps him on the assumption that he
will receive the equivalent; so the assistance has been precisely as great as
the advantage to the receiver, and therefore he must return as much as he has
received, or even more (for that would be nobler). In friendships based on
virtue on the other hand, complaints do not arise, but the purpose of the doer
is a sort of measure; for in purpose lies the essential element of virtue and
character.
14
Differences arise also in friendships based
on superiority; for each expects to get more out of them, but when this happens
the friendship is dissolved. Not only does the better man think he ought to get
more, since more should be assigned to a good man, but the more useful
similarly expects this; they say a useless man should not get as much as they
should, since it becomes an act of public service and not a friendship if the
proceeds of the friendship do not answer to the worth of the benefits
conferred. For they think that, as in a commercial partnership those who put
more in get more out, so it should be in friendship. But the man who is in a
state of need and inferiority makes the opposite claim; they think it is the
part of a good friend to help those who are in need; what, they say, is the use
of being the friend of a good man or a powerful man, if one is to get nothing
out of it? At all events it seems that
each party is justified in his claim, and that each should get more out of the
friendship than the other-not more of the same thing, however, but the superior
more honour and the inferior more gain; for honour is the prize of virtue and
of beneficence, while gain is the assistance required by inferiority. It seems to be so in constitutional
arrangements also; the man who contributes nothing good to the common stock is
not honoured; for what belongs to the public is given to the man who benefits
the public, and honour does belong to the public. It is not possible to get
wealth from the common stock and at the same time honour. For no one puts up
with the smaller share in all things; therefore to the man who loses in wealth
they assign honour and to the man who is willing to be paid, wealth, since the
proportion to merit equalizes the parties and preserves the friendship, as we
have said. This then is also the way in which we should associate with
unequals; the man who is benefited in respect of wealth or virtue must give
honour in return, repaying what he can. For friendship asks a man to do what he
can, not what is proportional to the merits of the case; since that cannot
always be done, e.g. in honours paid to the gods or to parents; for no one
could ever return to them the equivalent of what he gets, but the man who
serves them to the utmost of his power is thought to be a good man. This is why
it would not seem open to a man to disown his father (though a father may
disown his son); being in debt, he should repay, but there is nothing by doing
which a son will have done the equivalent of what he has received, so that he
is always in debt. But creditors can remit a debt; and a father can therefore
do so too. At the same time it is thought that presumably no one would
repudiate a son who was not far gone in wickedness; for apart from the natural
friendship of father and son it is human nature not to reject a son's
assistance. But the son, if he is wicked, will naturally avoid aiding his
father, or not be zealous about it; for most people wish to get benefits, but
avoid doing them, as a thing unprofitable.-So much for these questions.
BOOK IX
1
IN all friendships between dissimilars it is,
as we have said, proportion that equalizes the parties and preserves the
friendship; e.g. in the political form of friendship the shoemaker gets a
return for his shoes in proportion to his worth, and the weaver and all other
craftsmen do the same. Now here a common measure has been provided in the form
of money, and therefore everything is referred to this and measured by this;
but in the friendship of lovers sometimes the lover complains that his excess
of love is not met by love in return though perhaps there is nothing lovable
about him), while often the beloved complains that the lover who formerly
promised everything now performs nothing. Such incidents happen when the lover
loves the beloved for the sake of pleasure while the beloved loves the lover
for the sake of utility, and they do not both possess the qualities expected of
them. If these be the objects of the friendship it is dissolved when they do
not get the things that formed the motives of their love; for each did not love
the other person himself but the qualities he had, and these were not enduring;
that is why the friendships also are transient. But the love of characters, as
has been said, endures because it is self-dependent. Differences arise when
what they get is something different and not what they desire; for it is like
getting nothing at all when we do not get what we aim at; compare the story of
the person who made promises to a lyre-player, promising him the more, the
better he sang, but in the morning, when the other demanded the fulfilment of
his promises, said that he had given pleasure for pleasure. Now if this had
been what each wanted, all would have been well; but if the one wanted
enjoyment but the other gain, and the one has what he wants while the other has
not, the terms of the association will not have been properly fulfilled; for
what each in fact wants is what he attends to, and it is for the sake of that
that that he will give what he has. But
who is to fix the worth of the service; he who makes the sacrifice or he who
has got the advantage? At any rate the other seems to leave it to him. This is
what they say Protagoras used to do; whenever he taught anything whatsoever, he
bade the learner assess the value of the knowledge, and accepted the amount so
fixed. But in such matters some men approve of the saying 'let a man have his
fixed reward'. Those who get the money first and then do none of the things
they said they would, owing to the extravagance of their promises, naturally
find themselves the objects of complaint; for they do not fulfil what they
agreed to. The sophists are perhaps compelled to do this because no one would
give money for the things they do know. These people then, if they do not do
what they have been paid for, are naturally made the objects of complaint. But where there is no contract of service,
those who give up something for the sake of the other party cannot (as we have
said) be complained of (for that is the nature of the friendship of virtue),
and the return to them must be made on the basis of their purpose (for it is
purpose that is the characteristic thing in a friend and in virtue). And so
too, it seems, should one make a return to those with whom one has studied
philosophy; for their worth cannot be measured against money, and they can get
no honour which will balance their services, but still it is perhaps enough, as
it is with the gods and with one's parents, to give them what one can. If the gift was not of this sort, but was
made with a view to a return, it is no doubt preferable that the return made
should be one that seems fair to both parties, but if this cannot be achieved,
it would seem not only necessary that the person who gets the first service
should fix the reward, but also just; for if the other gets in return the
equivalent of the advantage the beneficiary has received, or the price lie would
have paid for the pleasure, he will have got what is fair as from the
other. We see this happening too with
things put up for sale, and in some places there are laws providing that no
actions shall arise out of voluntary contracts, on the assumption that one
should settle with a person to whom one has given credit, in the spirit in
which one bargained with him. The law holds that it is more just that the
person to whom credit was given should fix the terms than that the person who
gave credit should do so. For most things are not assessed at the same value by
those who have them and those who want them; each class values highly what is
its own and what it is offering; yet the return is made on the terms fixed by
the receiver. But no doubt the receiver should assess a thing not at what it
seems worth when he has it, but at what he assessed it at before he had
it.
2
A further problem is set by such questions
as, whether one should in all things give the preference to one's father and
obey him, or whether when one is ill one should trust a doctor, and when one
has to elect a general should elect a man of military skill; and similarly
whether one should render a service by preference to a friend or to a good man,
and should show gratitude to a benefactor or oblige a friend, if one cannot do
both. All such questions are hard, are
they not, to decide with precision? For they admit of many variations of all
sorts in respect both of the magnitude of the service and of its nobility
necessity. But that we should not give the preference in all things to the same
person is plain enough; and we must for the most part return benefits rather
than oblige friends, as we must pay back a loan to a creditor rather than make
one to a friend. But perhaps even this is not always true; e.g. should a man
who has been ransomed out of the hands of brigands ransom his ransomer in
return, whoever he may be (or pay him if he has not been captured but demands
payment) or should he ransom his father? It would seem that he should ransom
his father in preference even to himself. As we have said, then, generally the
debt should be paid, but if the gift is exceedingly noble or exceedingly
necessary, one should defer to these considerations. For sometimes it is not
even fair to return the equivalent of what one has received, when the one man
has done a service to one whom he knows to be good, while the other makes a
return to one whom he believes to be bad. For that matter, one should sometimes
not lend in return to one who has lent to oneself; for the one person lent to a
good man, expecting to recover his loan, while the other has no hope of
recovering from one who is believed to be bad. Therefore if the facts really
are so, the demand is not fair; and if they are not, but people think they are,
they would be held to be doing nothing strange in refusing. As we have often
pointed out, then, discussions about feelings and actions have just as much
definiteness as their subject-matter.
That we should not make the same return to every one, nor give a father
the preference in everything, as one does not sacrifice everything to Zeus, is
plain enough; but since we ought to render different things to parents,
brothers, comrades, and benefactors, we ought to render to each class what is
appropriate and becoming. And this is what people seem in fact to do; to
marriages they invite their kinsfolk; for these have a part in the family and
therefore in the doings that affect the family; and at funerals also they think
that kinsfolk, before all others, should meet, for the same reason. And it
would be thought that in the matter of food we should help our parents before
all others, since we owe our own nourishment to them, and it is more honourable
to help in this respect the authors of our being even before ourselves; and
honour too one should give to one's parents as one does to the gods, but not
any and every honour; for that matter one should not give the same honour to
one's father and one's mother, nor again should one give them the honour due to
a philosopher or to a general, but the honour due to a father, or again to a
mother. To all older persons, too, one should give honour appropriate to their
age, by rising to receive them and finding seats for them and so on; while to
comrades and brothers one should allow freedom of speech and common use of all
things. To kinsmen, too, and fellow-tribesmen and fellow-citizens and to every
other class one should always try to assign what is appropriate, and to compare
the claims of each class with respect to nearness of relation and to virtue or
usefulness. The comparison is easier when the persons belong to the same class,
and more laborious when they are different. Yet we must not on that account
shrink from the task, but decide the question as best we can.
3
Another question that arises is whether
friendships should or should not be broken off when the other party does not
remain the same. Perhaps we may say that there is nothing strange in breaking
off a friendship based on utility or pleasure, when our friends no longer have
these attributes. For it was of these attributes that we were the friends; and
when these have failed it is reasonable to love no longer. But one might
complain of another if, when he loved us for our usefulness or pleasantness, he
pretended to love us for our character. For, as we said at the outset, most
differences arise between friends when they are not friends in the spirit in
which they think they are. So when a man has deceived himself and has thought
he was being loved for his character, when the other person was doing nothing
of the kind, he must blame himself; when he has been deceived by the pretences
of the other person, it is just that he should complain against his deceiver;
he will complain with more justice than one does against people who counterfeit
the currency, inasmuch as the wrongdoing is concerned with something more
valuable. But if one accepts another
man as good, and he turns out badly and is seen to do so, must one still love
him? Surely it is impossible, since not everything can be loved, but only what
is good. What is evil neither can nor should be loved; for it is not one's duty
to be a lover of evil, nor to become like what is bad; and we have said that
like is dear like. Must the friendship, then, be forthwith broken off? Or is
this not so in all cases, but only when one's friends are incurable in their
wickedness? If they are capable of being reformed one should rather come to the
assistance of their character or their property, inasmuch as this is better and
more characteristic of friendship. But a man who breaks off such a friendship
would seem to be doing nothing strange; for it was not to a man of this sort
that he was a friend; when his friend has changed, therefore, and he is unable
to save him, he gives him up. But if
one friend remained the same while the other became better and far outstripped
him in virtue, should the latter treat the former as a friend? Surely he
cannot. When the interval is great this becomes most plain, e.g. in the case of
childish friendships; if one friend remained a child in intellect while the
other became a fully developed man, how could they be friends when they neither
approved of the same things nor delighted in and were pained by the same
things? For not even with regard to each other will their tastes agree, and
without this (as we saw) they cannot be friends; for they cannot live together.
But we have discussed these matters.
Should he, then, behave no otherwise towards him than he would if he had
never been his friend? Surely he should keep a remembrance of their former
intimacy, and as we think we ought to oblige friends rather than strangers, so
to those who have been our friends we ought to make some allowance for our
former friendship, when the breach has not been due to excess of
wickedness.
4
Friendly relations with one's neighbours, and
the marks by which friendships are defined, seem to have proceeded from a man's
relations to himself. For (1) we define a friend as one who wishes and does
what is good, or seems so, for the sake of his friend, or (2) as one who wishes
his friend to exist and live, for his sake; which mothers do to their children,
and friends do who have come into conflict. And (3) others define him as one
who lives with and (4) has the same tastes as another, or (5) one who grieves
and rejoices with his friend; and this too is found in mothers most of all. It
is by some one of these characterstics that friendship too is defined. Now each of these is true of the good man's
relation to himself (and of all other men in so far as they think themselves
good; virtue and the good man seem, as has been said, to be the measure of
every class of things). For his opinions are harmonious, and he desires the
same things with all his soul; and therefore he wishes for himself what is good
and what seems so, and does it (for it is characteristic of the good man to
work out the good), and does so for his own sake (for he does it for the sake
of the intellectual element in him, which is thought to be the man himself);
and he wishes himself to live and be preserved, and especially the element by
virtue of which he thinks. For existence is good to the virtuous man, and each
man wishes himself what is good, while no one chooses to possess the whole
world if he has first to become some one else (for that matter, even now God
possesses the good); he wishes for this only on condition of being whatever he
is; and the element that thinks would seem to be the individual man, or to be
so more than any other element in him. And such a man wishes to live with
himself; for he does so with pleasure, since the memories of his past acts are
delightful and his hopes for the future are good, and therefore pleasant. His
mind is well stored too with subjects of contemplation. And he grieves and
rejoices, more than any other, with himself; for the same thing is always
painful, and the same thing always pleasant, and not one thing at one time and
another at another; he has, so to speak, nothing to repent of. Therefore, since each of these
characteristics belongs to the good man in relation to himself, and he is
related to his friend as to himself (for his friend is another self),
friendship too is thought to be one of these attributes, and those who have
these attributes to be friends. Whether there is or is not friendship between a
man and himself is a question we may dismiss for the present; there would seem
to be friendship in so far as he is two or more, to judge from the
afore-mentioned attributes of friendship, and from the fact that the extreme of
friendship is likened to one's love for oneself. But the attributes named seem to belong even to the majority of
men, poor creatures though they may be. Are we to say then that in so far as
they are satisfied with themselves and think they are good, they share in these
attributes? Certainly no one who is thoroughly bad and impious has these
attributes, or even seems to do so. They hardly belong even to inferior people;
for they are at variance with themselves, and have appetites for some things
and rational desires for others. This is true, for instance, of incontinent
people; for they choose, instead of the things they themselves think good,
things that are pleasant but hurtful; while others again, through cowardice and
laziness, shrink from doing what they think best for themselves. And those who
have done many terrible deeds and are hated for their wickedness even shrink
from life and destroy themselves. And wicked men seek for people with whom to
spend their days, and shun themselves; for they remember many a grevious deed,
and anticipate others like them, when they are by themselves, but when they are
with others they forget. And having nothing lovable in them they have no
feeling of love to themselves. Therefore also such men do not rejoice or grieve
with themselves; for their soul is rent by faction, and one element in it by
reason of its wickedness grieves when it abstains from certain acts, while the
other part is pleased, and one draws them this way and the other that, as if
they were pulling them in pieces. If a man cannot at the same time be pained
and pleased, at all events after a short time he is pained because he was
pleased, and he could have wished that these things had not been pleasant to
him; for bad men are laden with repentance.
Therefore the bad man does not seem to be amicably disposed even to
himself, because there is nothing in him to love; so that if to be thus is the
height of wretchedness, we should strain every nerve to avoid wickedness and
should endeavour to be good; for so and only so can one be either friendly to
oneself or a friend to another.
5
Goodwill is a friendly sort of relation, but
is not identical with friendship; for one may have goodwill both towards people
whom one does not know, and without their knowing it, but not friendship. This
has indeed been said already.' But goodwill is not even friendly feeling. For
it does not involve intensity or desire, whereas these accompany friendly
feeling; and friendly feeling implies intimacy while goodwill may arise of a
sudden, as it does towards competitors in a contest; we come to feel goodwill
for them and to share in their wishes, but we would not do anything with them;
for, as we said, we feel goodwill suddenly and love them only superficially. Goodwill seems, then, to be a beginning of
friendship, as the pleasure of the eye is the beginning of love. For no one
loves if he has not first been delighted by the form of the beloved, but he who
delights in the form of another does not, for all that, love him, but only does
so when he also longs for him when absent and craves for his presence; so too
it is not possible for people to be friends if they have not come to feel
goodwill for each other, but those who feel goodwill are not for all that
friends; for they only wish well to those for whom they feel goodwill, and
would not do anything with them nor take trouble for them. And so one might by
an extension of the term friendship say that goodwill is inactive friendship,
though when it is prolonged and reaches the point of intimacy it becomes
friendship-not the friendship based on utility nor that based on pleasure; for
goodwill too does not arise on those terms. The man who has received a benefit
bestows goodwill in return for what has been done to him, but in doing so is
only doing what is just; while he who wishes some one to prosper because he
hopes for enrichment through him seems to have goodwill not to him but rather
to himself, just as a man is not a friend to another if he cherishes him for
the sake of some use to be made of him. In general, goodwill arises on account
of some excellence and worth, when one man seems to another beautiful or brave
or something of the sort, as we pointed out in the case of competitors in a
contest.
6
Unanimity also seems to be a friendly
relation. For this reason it is not identity of opinion; for that might occur
even with people who do not know each other; nor do we say that people who have
the same views on any and every subject are unanimous, e.g. those who agree about
the heavenly bodies (for unanimity about these is not a friendly relation), but
we do say that a city is unanimous when men have the same opinion about what is
to their interest, and choose the same actions, and do what they have resolved
in common. It is about things to be done, therefore, that people are said to be
unanimous, and, among these, about matters of consequence and in which it is
possible for both or all parties to get what they want; e.g. a city is
unanimous when all its citizens think that the offices in it should be
elective, or that they should form an alliance with Sparta, or that Pittacus
should be their ruler-at a time when he himself was also willing to rule. But
when each of two people wishes himself to have the thing in question, like the
captains in the Phoenissae, they are in a state of faction; for it is not
unanimity when each of two parties thinks of the same thing, whatever that may
be, but only when they think of the same thing in the same hands, e.g. when
both the common people and those of the better class wish the best men to rule;
for thus and thus alone do all get what they aim at. Unanimity seems, then, to
be political friendship, as indeed it is commonly said to be; for it is
concerned with things that are to our interest and have an influence on our
life. Now such unanimity is found among
good men; for they are unanimous both in themselves and with one another,
being, so to say, of one mind (for the wishes of such men are constant and not
at the mercy of opposing currents like a strait of the sea), and they wish for
what is just and what is advantageous, and these are the objects of their
common endeavour as well. But bad men cannot be unanimous except to a small
extent, any more than they can be friends, since they aim at getting more than
their share of advantages, while in labour and public service they fall short
of their share; and each man wishing for advantage to himself criticizes his
neighbour and stands in his way; for if people do not watch it carefully the common
weal is soon destroyed. The result is that they are in a state of faction,
putting compulsion on each other but unwilling themselves to do what is
just.
7
Benefactors are thought to love those they
have benefited, more than those who have been well treated love those that have
treated them well, and this is discussed as though it were paradoxical. Most
people think it is because the latter are in the position of debtors and the
former of creditors; and therefore as, in the case of loans, debtors wish their
creditors did not exist, while creditors actually take care of the safety of
their debtors, so it is thought that benefactors wish the objects of their
action to exist since they will then get their gratitude, while the
beneficiaries take no interest in making this return. Epicharmus would perhaps
declare that they say this because they 'look at things on their bad side', but
it is quite like human nature; for most people are forgetful, and are more
anxious to be well treated than to treat others well. But the cause would seem
to be more deeply rooted in the nature of things; the case of those who have
lent money is not even analogous. For they have no friendly feeling to their
debtors, but only a wish that they may kept safe with a view to what is to be
got from them; while those who have done a service to others feel friendship
and love for those they have served even if these are not of any use to them
and never will be. This is what happens with craftsmen too; every man loves his
own handiwork better than he would be loved by it if it came alive; and this
happens perhaps most of all with poets; for they have an excessive love for
their own poems, doting on them as if they were their children. This is what
the position of benefactors is like; for that which they have treated well is
their handiwork, and therefore they love this more than the handiwork does its
maker. The cause of this is that existence is to all men a thing to be chosen
and loved, and that we exist by virtue of activity (i.e. by living and acting),
and that the handiwork is in a sense, the producer in activity; he loves his
handiwork, therefore, because he loves existence. And this is rooted in the
nature of things; for what he is in potentiality, his handiwork manifests in
activity. At the same time to the
benefactor that is noble which depends on his action, so that he delights in
the object of his action, whereas to the patient there is nothing noble in the
agent, but at most something advantageous, and this is less pleasant and lovable.
What is pleasant is the activity of the present, the hope of the future, the
memory of the past; but most pleasant is that which depends on activity, and
similarly this is most lovable. Now for a man who has made something his work
remains (for the noble is lasting), but for the person acted on the utility
passes away. And the memory of noble things is pleasant, but that of useful
things is not likely to be pleasant, or is less so; though the reverse seems
true of expectation. Further, love is
like activity, being loved like passivity; and loving and its concomitants are
attributes of those who are the more active.
Again, all men love more what they have won by labour; e.g. those who
have made their money love it more than those who have inherited it; and to be
well treated seems to involve no labour, while to treat others well is a
laborious task. These are the reasons, too, why mothers are fonder of their
children than fathers; bringing them into the world costs them more pains, and
they know better that the children are their own. This last point, too, would
seem to apply to benefactors.
8
The question is also debated, whether a man
should love himself most, or some one else. People criticize those who love
themselves most, and call them self-lovers, using this as an epithet of
disgrace, and a bad man seems to do everything for his own sake, and the more
so the more wicked he is-and so men reproach him, for instance, with doing
nothing of his own accord-while the good man acts for honour's sake, and the
more so the better he is, and acts for his friend's sake, and sacrifices his
own interest. But the facts clash with
these arguments, and this is not surprising. For men say that one ought to love
best one's best friend, and man's best friend is one who wishes well to the
object of his wish for his sake, even if no one is to know of it; and these
attributes are found most of all in a man's attitude towards himself, and so
are all the other attributes by which a friend is defined; for, as we have
said, it is from this relation that all the characteristics of friendship have
extended to our neighbours. All the proverbs, too, agree with this, e.g. 'a
single soul', and 'what friends have is common property', and 'friendship is
equality', and 'charity begins at home'; for all these marks will be found most
in a man's relation to himself; he is his own best friend and therefore ought
to love himself best. It is therefore a reasonable question, which of the two
views we should follow; for both are plausible. Perhaps we ought to mark off such arguments from each other and
determine how far and in what respects each view is right. Now if we grasp the
sense in which each school uses the phrase 'lover of self', the truth may
become evident. Those who use the term as one of reproach ascribe self-love to
people who assign to themselves the greater share of wealth, honours, and
bodily pleasures; for these are what most people desire, and busy themselves
about as though they were the best of all things, which is the reason, too, why
they become objects of competition. So those who are grasping with regard to
these things gratify their appetites and in general their feelings and the
irrational element of the soul; and most men are of this nature (which is the
reason why the epithet has come to be used as it is-it takes its meaning from
the prevailing type of self-love, which is a bad one); it is just, therefore,
that men who are lovers of self in this way are reproached for being so. That
it is those who give themselves the preference in regard to objects of this
sort that most people usually call lovers of self is plain; for if a man were
always anxious that he himself, above all things, should act justly,
temperately, or in accordance with any other of the virtues, and in general
were always to try to secure for himself the honourable course, no one will
call such a man a lover of self or blame him.
But such a man would seem more than the other a lover of self; at all
events he assigns to himself the things that are noblest and best, and
gratifies the most authoritative element in and in all things obeys this; and
just as a city or any other systematic whole is most properly identified with
the most authoritative element in it, so is a man; and therefore the man who
loves this and gratifies it is most of all a lover of self. Besides, a man is
said to have or not to have self-control according as his reason has or has not
the control, on the assumption that this is the man himself; and the things men
have done on a rational principle are thought most properly their own acts and
voluntary acts. That this is the man himself, then, or is so more than anything
else, is plain, and also that the good man loves most this part of him. Whence
it follows that he is most truly a lover of self, of another type than that
which is a matter of reproach, and as different from that as living according
to a rational principle is from living as passion dictates, and desiring what
is noble from desiring what seems advantageous. Those, then, who busy
themselves in an exceptional degree with noble actions all men approve and
praise; and if all were to strive towards what is noble and strain every nerve
to do the noblest deeds, everything would be as it should be for the common
weal, and every one would secure for himself the goods that are greatest, since
virtue is the greatest of goods.
Therefore the good man should be a lover of self (for he will both
himself profit by doing noble acts, and will benefit his fellows), but the
wicked man should not; for he will hurt both himself and his neighbours,
following as he does evil passions. For the wicked man, what he does clashes
with what he ought to do, but what the good man ought to do he does; for reason
in each of its possessors chooses what is best for itself, and the good man
obeys his reason. It is true of the good man too that he does many acts for the
sake of his friends and his country, and if necessary dies for them; for he
will throw away both wealth and honours and in general the goods that are
objects of competition, gaining for himself nobility; since he would prefer a
short period of intense pleasure to a long one of mild enjoyment, a twelvemonth
of noble life to many years of humdrum existence, and one great and noble
action to many trivial ones. Now those who die for others doubtless attain this
result; it is therefore a great prize that they choose for themselves. They
will throw away wealth too on condition that their friends will gain more; for
while a man's friend gains wealth he himself achieves nobility; he is therefore
assigning the greater good to himself. The same too is true of honour and
office; all these things he will sacrifice to his friend; for this is noble and
laudable for himself. Rightly then is he thought to be good, since he chooses
nobility before all else. But he may even give up actions to his friend; it may
be nobler to become the cause of his friend's acting than to act himself. In
all the actions, therefore, that men are praised for, the good man is seen to assign
to himself the greater share in what is noble. In this sense, then, as has been
said, a man should be a lover of self; but in the sense in which most men are
so, he ought not.
9
It is also disputed whether the happy man
will need friends or not. It is said that those who are supremely happy and
self-sufficient have no need of friends; for they have the things that are
good, and therefore being self-sufficient they need nothing further, while a
friend, being another self, furnishes what a man cannot provide by his own
effort; whence the saying 'when fortune is kind, what need of friends?' But it
seems strange, when one assigns all good things to the happy man, not to assign
friends, who are thought the greatest of external goods. And if it is more characteristic
of a friend to do well by another than to be well done by, and to confer
benefits is characteristic of the good man and of virtue, and it is nobler to
do well by friends than by strangers, the good man will need people to do well
by. This is why the question is asked whether we need friends more in
prosperity or in adversity, on the assumption that not only does a man in
adversity need people to confer benefits on him, but also those who are
prospering need people to do well by. Surely it is strange, too, to make the
supremely happy man a solitary; for no one would choose the whole world on
condition of being alone, since man is a political creature and one whose
nature is to live with others. Therefore even the happy man lives with others; for
he has the things that are by nature good. And plainly it is better to spend
his days with friends and good men than with strangers or any chance persons.
Therefore the happy man needs friends.
What then is it that the first school means, and in what respect is it
right? Is it that most identify friends with useful people? Of such friends
indeed the supremely happy man will have no need, since he already has the
things that are good; nor will he need those whom one makes one's friends
because of their pleasantness, or he will need them only to a small extent (for
his life, being pleasant, has no need of adventitious pleasure); and because he
does not need such friends he is thought not to need friends. But that is surely not true. For we have
said at the outset that happiness is an activity; and activity plainly comes
into being and is not present at the start like a piece of property. If (1)
happiness lies in living and being active, and the good man's activity is
virtuous and pleasant in itself, as we have said at the outset, and (2) a
thing's being one's own is one of the attributes that make it pleasant, and (3)
we can contemplate our neighbours better than ourselves and their actions
better than our own, and if the actions of virtuous men who are their friends
are pleasant to good men (since these have both the attributes that are
naturally pleasant),-if this be so, the supremely happy man will need friends
of this sort, since his purpose is to contemplate worthy actions and actions
that are his own, and the actions of a good man who is his friend have both
these qualities. Further, men think
that the happy man ought to live pleasantly. Now if he were a solitary, life
would be hard for him; for by oneself it is not easy to be continuously active;
but with others and towards others it is easier. With others therefore his
activity will be more continuous, and it is in itself pleasant, as it ought to
be for the man who is supremely happy; for a good man qua good delights in
virtuous actions and is vexed at vicious ones, as a musical man enjoys
beautiful tunes but is pained at bad ones. A certain training in virtue arises
also from the company of the good, as Theognis has said before us. If we look deeper into the nature of things,
a virtuous friend seems to be naturally desirable for a virtuous man. For that
which is good by nature, we have said, is for the virtuous man good and
pleasant in itself. Now life is defined in the case of animals by the power of
perception in that of man by the power of perception or thought; and a power is
defined by reference to the corresponding activity, which is the essential
thing; therefore life seems to be essentially the act of perceiving or
thinking. And life is among the things that are good and pleasant in themselves,
since it is determinate and the determinate is of the nature of the good; and
that which is good by nature is also good for the virtuous man (which is the
reason why life seems pleasant to all men); but we must not apply this to a
wicked and corrupt life nor to a life spent in pain; for such a life is
indeterminate, as are its attributes. The nature of pain will become plainer in
what follows. But if life itself is good and pleasant (which it seems to be,
from the very fact that all men desire it, and particularly those who are good
and supremely happy; for to such men life is most desirable, and their
existence is the most supremely happy) and if he who sees perceives that he
sees, and he who hears, that he hears, and he who walks, that he walks, and in
the case of all other activities similarly there is something which perceives
that we are active, so that if we perceive, we perceive that we perceive, and
if we think, that we think; and if to perceive that we perceive or think is to
perceive that we exist (for existence was defined as perceiving or thinking);
and if perceiving that one lives is in itself one of the things that are
pleasant (for life is by nature good, and to perceive what is good present in
oneself is pleasant); and if life is desirable, and particularly so for good
men, because to them existence is good and pleasant for they are pleased at the
consciousness of the presence in them of what is in itself good); and if as the
virtuous man is to himself, he is to his friend also (for his friend is another
self):-if all this be true, as his own being is desirable for each man, so, or
almost so, is that of his friend. Now his being was seen to be desirable
because he perceived his own goodness, and such perception is pleasant in
itself. He needs, therefore, to be conscious of the existence of his friend as
well, and this will be realized in their living together and sharing in
discussion and thought; for this is what living together would seem to mean in
the case of man, and not, as in the case of cattle, feeding in the same
place. If, then, being is in itself
desirable for the supremely happy man (since it is by its nature good and
pleasant), and that of his friend is very much the same, a friend will be one of
the things that are desirable. Now that which is desirable for him he must
have, or he will be deficient in this respect. The man who is to be happy will
therefore need virtuous friends.
10
Should we, then, make as many friends as
possible, or-as in the case of hospitality it is thought to be suitable advice,
that one should be 'neither a man of many guests nor a man with none'-will that
apply to friendship as well; should a man neither be friendless nor have an
excessive number of friends? To friends
made with a view to utility this saying would seem thoroughly applicable; for
to do services to many people in return is a laborious task and life is not
long enough for its performance. Therefore friends in excess of those who are
sufficient for our own life are superfluous, and hindrances to the noble life;
so that we have no need of them. Of friends made with a view to pleasure, also,
few are enough, as a little seasoning in food is enough. But as regards good friends, should we have
as many as possible, or is there a limit to the number of one's friends, as
there is to the size of a city? You cannot make a city of ten men, and if there
are a hundred thousand it is a city no longer. But the proper number is
presumably not a single number, but anything that falls between certain fixed
points. So for friends too there is a fixed number perhaps the largest number
with whom one can live together (for that, we found, thought to be very
characteristic of friendship); and that one cannot live with many people and
divide oneself up among them is plain. Further, they too must be friends of one
another, if they are all to spend their days together; and it is a hard
business for this condition to be fulfilled with a large number. It is found
difficult, too, to rejoice and to grieve in an intimate way with many people,
for it may likely happen that one has at once to be happy with one friend and
to mourn with another. Presumably, then, it is well not to seek to have as many
friends as possible, but as many as are enough for the purpose of living
together; for it would seem actually impossible to be a great friend to many
people. This is why one cannot love several people; love is ideally a sort of
excess of friendship, and that can only be felt towards one person; therefore
great friendship too can only be felt towards a few people. This seems to be
confirmed in practice; for we do not find many people who are friends in the
comradely way of friendship, and the famous friendships of this sort are always
between two people. Those who have many friends and mix intimately with them
all are thought to be no one's friend, except in the way proper to
fellow-citizens, and such people are also called obsequious. In the way proper
to fellow-citizens, indeed, it is possible to be the friend of many and yet not
be obsequious but a genuinely good man; but one cannot have with many people
the friendship based on virtue and on the character of our friends themselves,
and we must be content if we find even a few such.
11
Do we need friends more in good fortune or in
bad? They are sought after in both; for while men in adversity need help, in
prosperity they need people to live with and to make the objects of their
beneficence; for they wish to do well by others. Friendship, then, is more
necessary in bad fortune, and so it is useful friends that one wants in this
case; but it is more noble in good fortune, and so we also seek for good men as
our friends, since it is more desirable to confer benefits on these and to live
with these. For the very presence of friends is pleasant both in good fortune
and also in bad, since grief is lightened when friends sorrow with us. Hence
one might ask whether they share as it were our burden, or-without that
happening-their presence by its pleasantness, and the thought of their grieving
with us, make our pain less. Whether it is for these reasons or for some other
that our grief is lightened, is a question that may be dismissed; at all events
what we have described appears to take place.
But their presence seems to contain a mixture of various factors. The
very seeing of one's friends is pleasant, especially if one is in adversity,
and becomes a safeguard against grief (for a friend tends to comfort us both by
the sight of him and by his words, if he is tactful, since he knows our character
and the things that please or pain us); but to see him pained at our
misfortunes is painful; for every one shuns being a cause of pain to his
friends. For this reason people of a manly nature guard against making their
friends grieve with them, and, unless he be exceptionally insensible to pain,
such a man cannot stand the pain that ensues for his friends, and in general
does not admit fellow-mourners because he is not himself given to mourning; but
women and womanly men enjoy sympathisers in their grief, and love them as
friends and companions in sorrow. But in all things one obviously ought to
imitate the better type of person. On
the other hand, the presence of friends in our prosperity implies both a
pleasant passing of our time and the pleasant thought of their pleasure at our
own good fortune. For this cause it would seem that we ought to summon our
friends readily to share our good fortunes (for the beneficent character is a
noble one), but summon them to our bad fortunes with hesitation; for we ought
to give them as little a share as possible in our evils whence the saying
'enough is my misfortune'. We should summon friends to us most of all when they
are likely by suffering a few inconveniences to do us a great service. Conversely, it is fitting to go unasked and
readily to the aid of those in adversity (for it is characteristic of a friend
to render services, and especially to those who are in need and have not
demanded them; such action is nobler and pleasanter for both persons); but when
our friends are prosperous we should join readily in their activities (for they
need friends for these too), but be tardy in coming forward to be the objects
of their kindness; for it is not noble to be keen to receive benefits. Still,
we must no doubt avoid getting the reputation of kill-joys by repulsing them;
for that sometimes happens. The
presence of friends, then, seems desirable in all circumstances.
12
Does it not follow, then, that, as for lovers
the sight of the beloved is the thing they love most, and they prefer this
sense to the others because on it love depends most for its being and for its
origin, so for friends the most desirable thing is living together? For
friendship is a partnership, and as a man is to himself, so is he to his friend;
now in his own case the consciousness of his being is desirable, and so
therefore is the consciousness of his friend's being, and the activity of this
consciousness is produced when they live together, so that it is natural that
they aim at this. And whatever existence means for each class of men, whatever
it is for whose sake they value life, in that they wish to occupy themselves
with their friends; and so some drink together, others dice together, others
join in athletic exercises and hunting, or in the study of philosophy, each
class spending their days together in whatever they love most in life; for
since they wish to live with their friends, they do and share in those things
which give them the sense of living together. Thus the friendship of bad men turns
out an evil thing (for because of their instability they unite in bad pursuits,
and besides they become evil by becoming like each other), while the friendship
of good men is good, being augmented by their companionship; and they are
thought to become better too by their activities and by improving each other;
for from each other they take the mould of the characteristics they
approve-whence the saying 'noble deeds from noble men'.-So much, then, for
friendship; our next task must be to discuss pleasure.
BOOK X
1
AFTER these matters we ought perhaps next to
discuss pleasure. For it is thought to be most intimately connected with our
human nature, which is the reason why in educating the young we steer them by
the rudders of pleasure and pain; it is thought, too, that to enjoy the things
we ought and to hate the things we ought has the greatest bearing on virtue of
character. For these things extend right through life, with a weight and power
of their own in respect both to virtue and to the happy life, since men choose
what is pleasant and avoid what is painful; and such things, it will be
thought, we should least of all omit to discuss, especially since they admit of
much dispute. For some say pleasure is the good, while others, on the contrary,
say it is thoroughly bad-some no doubt being persuaded that the facts are so,
and others thinking it has a better effect on our life to exhibit pleasure as a
bad thing even if it is not; for most people (they think) incline towards it
and are the slaves of their pleasures, for which reason they ought to lead them
in the opposite direction, since thus they will reach the middle state. But
surely this is not correct. For arguments about matters concerned with feelings
and actions are less reliable than facts: and so when they clash with the facts
of perception they are despised, and discredit the truth as well; if a man who
runs down pleasure is once seen to be alming at it, his inclining towards it is
thought to imply that it is all worthy of being aimed at; for most people are
not good at drawing distinctions. True arguments seem, then, most useful, not
only with a view to knowledge, but with a view to life also; for since they
harmonize with the facts they are believed, and so they stimulate those who understand
them to live according to them.-Enough of such questions; let us proceed to
review the opinions that have been expressed about pleasure.
2
Eudoxus thought pleasure was the good because
he saw all things, both rational and irrational, aiming at it, and because in
all things that which is the object of choice is what is excellent, and that
which is most the object of choice the greatest good; thus the fact that all
things moved towards the same object indicated that this was for all things the
chief good (for each thing, he argued, finds its own good, as it finds its own
nourishment); and that which is good for all things and at which all aim was
the good. His arguments were credited more because of the excellence of his
character than for their own sake; he was thought to be remarkably
self-controlled, and therefore it was thought that he was not saying what he
did say as a friend of pleasure, but that the facts really were so. He believed
that the same conclusion followed no less plainly from a study of the contrary
of pleasure; pain was in itself an object of aversion to all things, and
therefore its contrary must be similarly an object of choice. And again that is
most an object of choice which we choose not because or for the sake of
something else, and pleasure is admittedly of this nature; for no one asks to
what end he is pleased, thus implying that pleasure is in itself an object of
choice. Further, he argued that pleasure when added to any good, e.g. to just
or temperate action, makes it more worthy of choice, and that it is only by
itself that the good can be increased.
This argument seems to show it to be one of the goods, and no more a
good than any other; for every good is more worthy of choice along with another
good than taken alone. And so it is by an argument of this kind that Plato
proves the good not to be pleasure; he argues that the pleasant life is more
desirable with wisdom than without, and that if the mixture is better, pleasure
is not the good; for the good cannot become more desirable by the addition of
anything to it. Now it is clear that nothing else, any more than pleasure, can
be the good if it is made more desirable by the addition of any of the things
that are good in themselves. What, then, is there that satisfies this criterion,
which at the same time we can participate in? It is something of this sort that
we are looking for. Those who object that that at which all things aim is not
necessarily good are, we may surmise, talking nonsense. For we say that that
which every one thinks really is so; and the man who attacks this belief will
hardly have anything more credible to maintain instead. If it is senseless
creatures that desire the things in question, there might be something in what
they say; but if intelligent creatures do so as well, what sense can there be
in this view? But perhaps even in inferior creatures there is some natural good
stronger than themselves which aims at their proper good. Nor does the argument about the contrary of
pleasure seem to be correct. They say that if pain is an evil it does not
follow that pleasure is a good; for evil is opposed to evil and at the same
time both are opposed to the neutral state-which is correct enough but does not
apply to the things in question. For if both pleasure and pain belonged to the
class of evils they ought both to be objects of aversion, while if they
belonged to the class of neutrals neither should be an object of aversion or
they should both be equally so; but in fact people evidently avoid the one as
evil and choose the other as good; that then must be the nature of the
opposition between them.
3
Nor again, if pleasure is not a quality, does
it follow that it is not a good; for the activities of virtue are not qualities
either, nor is happiness. They say, however, that the good is determinate,
while pleasure is indeterminate, because it admits of degrees. Now if it is
from the feeling of pleasure that they judge thus, the same will be true of
justice and the other virtues, in respect of which we plainly say that people
of a certain character are so more or less, and act more or less in accordance
with these virtues; for people may be more just or brave, and it is possible
also to act justly or temperately more or less. But if their judgement is based
on the various pleasures, surely they are not stating the real cause, if in
fact some pleasures are unmixed and others mixed. Again, just as health admits
of degrees without being indeterminate, why should not pleasure? The same
proportion is not found in all things, nor a single proportion always in the
same thing, but it may be relaxed and yet persist up to a point, and it may
differ in degree. The case of pleasure also may therefore be of this kind. Again, they assume that the good is perfect
while movements and comings into being are imperfect, and try to exhibit
pleasure as being a movement and a coming into being. But they do not seem to
be right even in saying that it is a movement. For speed and slowness are
thought to be proper to every movement, and if a movement, e.g. that of the
heavens, has not speed or slowness in itself, it has it in relation to
something else; but of pleasure neither of these things is true. For while we
may become pleased quickly as we may become angry quickly, we cannot be pleased
quickly, not even in relation to some one else, while we can walk, or grow, or
the like, quickly. While, then, we can change quickly or slowly into a state of
pleasure, we cannot quickly exhibit the activity of pleasure, i.e. be pleased.
Again, how can it be a coming into being? It is not thought that any chance
thing can come out of any chance thing, but that a thing is dissolved into that
out of which it comes into being; and pain would be the destruction of that of
which pleasure is the coming into being.
They say, too, that pain is the lack of that which is according to
nature, and pleasure is replenishment. But these experiences are bodily. If
then pleasure is replenishment with that which is according to nature, that
which feels pleasure will be that in which the replenishment takes place, i.e.
the body; but that is not thought to be the case; therefore the replenishment
is not pleasure, though one would be pleased when replenishment was taking
place, just as one would be pained if one was being operated on. This opinion
seems to be based on the pains and pleasures connected with nutrition; on the
fact that when people have been short of food and have felt pain beforehand
they are pleased by the replenishment. But this does not happen with all pleasures;
for the pleasures of learning and, among the sensuous pleasures, those of
smell, and also many sounds and sights, and memories and hopes, do not
presuppose pain. Of what then will these be the coming into being? There has
not been lack of anything of which they could be the supplying anew. In reply to those who bring forward the
disgraceful pleasures one may say that these are not pleasant; if things are
pleasant to people of vicious constitution, we must not suppose that they are
also pleasant to others than these, just as we do not reason so about the
things that are wholesome or sweet or bitter to sick people, or ascribe
whiteness to the things that seem white to those suffering from a disease of
the eye. Or one might answer thus-that the pleasures are desirable, but not
from these sources, as wealth is desirable, but not as the reward of betrayal,
and health, but not at the cost of eating anything and everything. Or perhaps
pleasures differ in kind; for those derived from noble sources are different
from those derived from base sources, and one cannot the pleasure of the just
man without being just, nor that of the musical man without being musical, and
so on. The fact, too, that a friend is
different from a flatterer seems to make it plain that pleasure is not a good
or that pleasures are different in kind; for the one is thought to consort with
us with a view to the good, the other with a view to our pleasure, and the one
is reproached for his conduct while the other is praised on the ground that he
consorts with us for different ends. And no one would choose to live with the
intellect of a child throughout his life, however much he were to be pleased at
the things that children are pleased at, nor to get enjoyment by doing some
most disgraceful deed, though he were never to feel any pain in consequence.
And there are many things we should be keen about even if they brought no
pleasure, e.g. seeing, remembering, knowing, possessing the virtues. If
pleasures necessarily do accompany these, that makes no odds; we should choose
these even if no pleasure resulted. It seems to be clear, then, that neither is
pleasure the good nor is all pleasure desirable, and that some pleasures are
desirable in themselves, differing in kind or in their sources from the others.
So much for the things that are said about pleasure and pain.
4
What pleasure is, or what kind of thing it
is, will become plainer if we take up the question aga from the beginning.
Seeing seems to be at any moment complete, for it does not lack anything which
coming into being later will complete its form; and pleasure also seems to be
of this nature. For it is a whole, and at no time can one find a pleasure whose
form will be completed if the pleasure lasts longer. For this reason, too, it is
not a movement. For every movement (e.g. that of building) takes time and is
for the sake of an end, and is complete when it has made what it aims at. It is
complete, therefore, only in the whole time or at that final moment. In their
parts and during the time they occupy, all movements are incomplete, and are
different in kind from the whole movement and from each other. For the fitting
together of the stones is different from the fluting of the column, and these
are both different from the making of the temple; and the making of the temple
is complete (for it lacks nothing with a view to the end proposed), but the
making of the base or of the triglyph is incomplete; for each is the making of
only a part. They differ in kind, then, and it is not possible to find at any
and every time a movement complete in form, but if at all, only in the whole
time. So, too, in the case of walking and all other movements. For if
locomotion is a movement from to there, it, too, has differences in
kind-flying, walking, leaping, and so on. And not only so, but in walking
itself there are such differences; for the whence and whither are not the same
in the whole racecourse and in a part of it, nor in one part and in another,
nor is it the same thing to traverse this line and that; for one traverses not
only a line but one which is in a place, and this one is in a different place
from that. We have discussed movement with precision in another work, but it
seems that it is not complete at any and every time, but that the many movements
are incomplete and different in kind, since the whence and whither give them
their form. But of pleasure the form is complete at any and every time.
Plainly, then, pleasure and movement must be different from each other, and
pleasure must be one of the things that are whole and complete. This would seem
to be the case, too, from the fact that it is not possible to move otherwise
than in time, but it is possible to be pleased; for that which takes place in a
moment is a whole. From these
considerations it is clear, too, that these thinkers are not right in saying
there is a movement or a coming into being of pleasure. For these cannot be
ascribed to all things, but only to those that are divisible and not wholes;
there is no coming into being of seeing nor of a point nor of a unit, nor is
any of these a movement or coming into being; therefore there is no movement or
coming into being of pleasure either; for it is a whole. Since every sense is active in relation to
its object, and a sense which is in good condition acts perfectly in relation
to the most beautiful of its objects (for perfect activity seems to be ideally
of this nature; whether we say that it is active, or the organ in which it
resides, may be assumed to be immaterial), it follows that in the case of each
sense the best activity is that of the best-conditioned organ in relation to
the finest of its objects. And this activity will be the most complete and
pleasant. For, while there is pleasure in respect of any sense, and in respect
of thought and contemplation no less, the most complete is pleasantest, and
that of a well-conditioned organ in relation to the worthiest of its objects is
the most complete; and the pleasure completes the activity. But the pleasure
does not complete it in the same way as the combination of object and sense,
both good, just as health and the doctor are not in the same way the cause of a
man's being healthy. (That pleasure is produced in respect to each sense is
plain; for we speak of sights and sounds as pleasant. It is also plain that it
arises most of all when both the sense is at its best and it is active in
reference to an object which corresponds; when both object and perceiver are of
the best there will always be pleasure, since the requisite agent and patient
are both present.) Pleasure completes the activity not as the corresponding
permanent state does, by its immanence, but as an end which supervenes as the
bloom of youth does on those in the flower of their age. So long, then, as both
the intelligible or sensible object and the discriminating or contemplative
faculty are as they should be, the pleasure will be involved in the activity;
for when both the passive and the active factor are unchanged and are related
to each other in the same way, the same result naturally follows. How, then, is it that no one is continuously
pleased? Is it that we grow weary? Certainly all human beings are incapable of
continuous activity. Therefore pleasure also is not continuous; for it
accompanies activity. Some things delight us when they are new, but later do so
less, for the same reason; for at first the mind is in a state of stimulation
and intensely active about them, as people are with respect to their vision
when they look hard at a thing, but afterwards our activity is not of this
kind, but has grown relaxed; for which reason the pleasure also is dulled. One might think that all men desire pleasure
because they all aim at life; life is an activity, and each man is active about
those things and with those faculties that he loves most; e.g. the musician is
active with his hearing in reference to tunes, the student with his mind in
reference to theoretical questions, and so on in each case; now pleasure
completes the activities, and therefore life, which they desire. It is with
good reason, then, that they aim at pleasure too, since for every one it
completes life, which is desirable. But whether we choose life for the sake of
pleasure or pleasure for the sake of life is a question we may dismiss for the
present. For they seem to be bound up together and not to admit of separation,
since without activity pleasure does not arise, and every activity is completed
by the attendant pleasure.
5
For this reason pleasures seem, too, to
differ in kind. For things different in kind are, we think, completed by
different things (we see this to be true both of natural objects and of things
produced by art, e.g. animals, trees, a painting, a sculpture, a house, an
implement); and, similarly, we think that activities differing in kind are
completed by things differing in kind. Now the activities of thought differ
from those of the senses, and both differ among themselves, in kind; so,
therefore, do the pleasures that complete them. This may be seen, too, from the fact that each of the pleasures
is bound up with the activity it completes. For an activity is intensified by
its proper pleasure, since each class of things is better judged of and brought
to precision by those who engage in the activity with pleasure; e.g. it is
those who enjoy geometrical thinking that become geometers and grasp the
various propositions better, and, similarly, those who are fond of music or of
building, and so on, make progress in their proper function by enjoying it; so
the pleasures intensify the activities, and what intensifies a thing is proper
to it, but things different in kind have properties different in kind. This will be even more apparent from the
fact that activities are hindered by pleasures arising from other sources. For
people who are fond of playing the flute are incapable of attending to
arguments if they overhear some one playing the flute, since they enjoy
flute-playing more than the activity in hand; so the pleasure connected with
fluteplaying destroys the activity concerned with argument. This happens,
similarly, in all other cases, when one is active about two things at once; the
more pleasant activity drives out the other, and if it is much more pleasant
does so all the more, so that one even ceases from the other. This is why when we
enjoy anything very much we do not throw ourselves into anything else, and do
one thing only when we are not much pleased by another; e.g. in the theatre the
people who eat sweets do so most when the actors are poor. Now since activities
are made precise and more enduring and better by their proper pleasure, and
injured by alien pleasures, evidently the two kinds of pleasure are far apart.
For alien pleasures do pretty much what proper pains do, since activities are
destroyed by their proper pains; e.g. if a man finds writing or doing sums
unpleasant and painful, he does not write, or does not do sums, because the
activity is painful. So an activity suffers contrary effects from its proper
pleasures and pains, i.e. from those that supervene on it in virtue of its own
nature. And alien pleasures have been stated to do much the same as pain; they
destroy the activity, only not to the same degree. Now since activities differ in respect of goodness and badness,
and some are worthy to be chosen, others to be avoided, and others neutral, so,
too, are the pleasures; for to each activity there is a proper pleasure. The
pleasure proper to a worthy activity is good and that proper to an unworthy
activity bad; just as the appetites for noble objects are laudable, those for
base objects culpable. But the pleasures involved in activities are more proper
to them than the desires; for the latter are separated both in time and in
nature, while the former are close to the activities, and so hard to
distinguish from them that it admits of dispute whether the activity is not the
same as the pleasure. (Still, pleasure does not seem to be thought or
perception-that would be strange; but because they are not found apart they
appear to some people the same.) As activities are different, then, so are the
corresponding pleasures. Now sight is superior to touch in purity, and hearing
and smell to taste; the pleasures, therefore, are similarly superior, and those
of thought superior to these, and within each of the two kinds some are superior
to others. Each animal is thought to
have a proper pleasure, as it has a proper function; viz. that which
corresponds to its activity. If we survey them species by species, too, this
will be evident; horse, dog, and man have different pleasures, as Heraclitus
says 'asses would prefer sweepings to gold'; for food is pleasanter than gold
to asses. So the pleasures of creatures different in kind differ in kind, and
it is plausible to suppose that those of a single species do not differ. But
they vary to no small extent, in the case of men at least; the same things
delight some people and pain others, and are painful and odious to some, and
pleasant to and liked by others. This happens, too, in the case of sweet
things; the same things do not seem sweet to a man in a fever and a healthy
man-nor hot to a weak man and one in good condition. The same happens in other
cases. But in all such matters that which appears to the good man is thought to
be really so. If this is correct, as it seems to be, and virtue and the good
man as such are the measure of each thing, those also will be pleasures which
appear so to him, and those things pleasant which he enjoys. If the things he
finds tiresome seem pleasant to some one, that is nothing surprising; for men
may be ruined and spoilt in many ways; but the things are not pleasant, but
only pleasant to these people and to people in this condition. Those which are
admittedly disgraceful plainly should not be said to be pleasures, except to a
perverted taste; but of those that are thought to be good what kind of pleasure
or what pleasure should be said to be that proper to man? Is it not plain from
the corresponding activities? The pleasures follow these. Whether, then, the
perfect and supremely happy man has one or more activities, the pleasures that
perfect these will be said in the strict sense to be pleasures proper to man,
and the rest will be so in a secondary and fractional way, as are the
activities.
6
Now that we have spoken of the virtues, the
forms of friendship, and the varieties of pleasure, what remains is to discuss
in outline the nature of happiness, since this is what we state the end of
human nature to be. Our discussion will be the more concise if we first sum up
what we have said already. We said, then, that it is not a disposition; for if
it were it might belong to some one who was asleep throughout his life, living
the life of a plant, or, again, to some one who was suffering the greatest
misfortunes. If these implications are unacceptable, and we must rather class
happiness as an activity, as we have said before, and if some activities are
necessary, and desirable for the sake of something else, while others are so in
themselves, evidently happiness must be placed among those desirable in
themselves, not among those desirable for the sake of something else; for
happiness does not lack anything, but is self-sufficient. Now those activities
are desirable in themselves from which nothing is sought beyond the activity.
And of this nature virtuous actions are thought to be; for to do noble and good
deeds is a thing desirable for its own sake.
Pleasant amusements also are thought to be of this nature; we choose
them not for the sake of other things; for we are injured rather than benefited
by them, since we are led to neglect our bodies and our property. But most of
the people who are deemed happy take refuge in such pastimes, which is the
reason why those who are ready-witted at them are highly esteemed at the courts
of tyrants; they make themselves pleasant companions in the tyrants' favourite
pursuits, and that is the sort of man they want. Now these things are thought
to be of the nature of happiness because people in despotic positions spend
their leisure in them, but perhaps such people prove nothing; for virtue and
reason, from which good activities flow, do not depend on despotic position;
nor, if these people, who have never tasted pure and generous pleasure, take
refuge in the bodily pleasures, should these for that reason be thought more
desirable; for boys, too, think the things that are valued among themselves are
the best. It is to be expected, then, that, as different things seem valuable
to boys and to men, so they should to bad men and to good. Now, as we have
often maintained, those things are both valuable and pleasant which are such to
the good man; and to each man the activity in accordance with his own
disposition is most desirable, and, therefore, to the good man that which is in
accordance with virtue. Happiness, therefore, does not lie in amusement; it
would, indeed, be strange if the end were amusement, and one were to take
trouble and suffer hardship all one's life in order to amuse oneself. For, in a
word, everything that we choose we choose for the sake of something else-except
happiness, which is an end. Now to exert oneself and work for the sake of
amusement seems silly and utterly childish. But to amuse oneself in order that
one may exert oneself, as Anacharsis puts it, seems right; for amusement is a
sort of relaxation, and we need relaxation because we cannot work continuously.
Relaxation, then, is not an end; for it is taken for the sake of activity. The happy life is thought to be virtuous;
now a virtuous life requires exertion, and does not consist in amusement. And
we say that serious things are better than laughable things and those connected
with amusement, and that the activity of the better of any two things-whether
it be two elements of our being or two men-is the more serious; but the
activity of the better is ipso facto superior and more of the nature of
happiness. And any chance person-even a slave-can enjoy the bodily pleasures no
less than the best man; but no one assigns to a slave a share in
happiness-unless he assigns to him also a share in human life. For happiness does
not lie in such occupations, but, as we have said before, in virtuous
activities.
7
If happiness is activity in accordance with
virtue, it is reasonable that it should be in accordance with the highest
virtue; and this will be that of the best thing in us. Whether it be reason or
something else that is this element which is thought to be our natural ruler
and guide and to take thought of things noble and divine, whether it be itself
also divine or only the most divine element in us, the activity of this in
accordance with its proper virtue will be perfect happiness. That this activity
is contemplative we have already said.
Now this would seem to be in agreement both with what we said before and
with the truth. For, firstly, this activity is the best (since not only is
reason the best thing in us, but the objects of reason are the best of knowable
objects); and secondly, it is the most continuous, since we can contemplate
truth more continuously than we can do anything. And we think happiness has pleasure
mingled with it, but the activity of philosophic wisdom is admittedly the
pleasantest of virtuous activities; at all events the pursuit of it is thought
to offer pleasures marvellous for their purity and their enduringness, and it
is to be expected that those who know will pass their time more pleasantly than
those who inquire. And the self-sufficiency that is spoken of must belong most
to the contemplative activity. For while a philosopher, as well as a just man
or one possessing any other virtue, needs the necessaries of life, when they
are sufficiently equipped with things of that sort the just man needs people
towards whom and with whom he shall act justly, and the temperate man, the
brave man, and each of the others is in the same case, but the philosopher,
even when by himself, can contemplate truth, and the better the wiser he is; he
can perhaps do so better if he has fellow-workers, but still he is the most
self-sufficient. And this activity alone would seem to be loved for its own
sake; for nothing arises from it apart from the contemplating, while from
practical activities we gain more or less apart from the action. And happiness
is thought to depend on leisure; for we are busy that we may have leisure, and
make war that we may live in peace. Now the activity of the practical virtues
is exhibited in political or military affairs, but the actions concerned with
these seem to be unleisurely. Warlike actions are completely so (for no one
chooses to be at war, or provokes war, for the sake of being at war; any one
would seem absolutely murderous if he were to make enemies of his friends in
order to bring about battle and slaughter); but the action of the statesman is
also unleisurely, and-apart from the political action itself-aims at despotic
power and honours, or at all events happiness, for him and his fellow
citizens-a happiness different from political action, and evidently sought as
being different. So if among virtuous actions political and military actions
are distinguished by nobility and greatness, and these are unleisurely and aim
at an end and are not desirable for their own sake, but the activity of reason,
which is contemplative, seems both to be superior in serious worth and to aim
at no end beyond itself, and to have its pleasure proper to itself (and this
augments the activity), and the self-sufficiency, leisureliness, unweariedness
(so far as this is possible for man), and all the other attributes ascribed to
the supremely happy man are evidently those connected with this activity, it
follows that this will be the complete happiness of man, if it be allowed a
complete term of life (for none of the attributes of happiness is
incomplete). But such a life would be
too high for man; for it is not in so far as he is man that he will live so,
but in so far as something divine is present in him; and by so much as this is
superior to our composite nature is its activity superior to that which is the
exercise of the other kind of virtue. If reason is divine, then, in comparison
with man, the life according to it is divine in comparison with human life. But
we must not follow those who advise us, being men, to think of human things,
and, being mortal, of mortal things, but must, so far as we can, make ourselves
immortal, and strain every nerve to live in accordance with the best thing in
us; for even if it be small in bulk, much more does it in power and worth
surpass everything. This would seem, too, to be each man himself, since it is
the authoritative and better part of him. It would be strange, then, if he were
to choose not the life of his self but that of something else. And what we said
before' will apply now; that which is proper to each thing is by nature best
and most pleasant for each thing; for man, therefore, the life according to reason
is best and pleasantest, since reason more than anything else is man. This life
therefore is also the happiest.
8
But in a secondary degree the life in
accordance with the other kind of virtue is happy; for the activities in
accordance with this befit our human estate. Just and brave acts, and other
virtuous acts, we do in relation to each other, observing our respective duties
with regard to contracts and services and all manner of actions and with regard
to passions; and all of these seem to be typically human. Some of them seem
even to arise from the body, and virtue of character to be in many ways bound
up with the passions. Practical wisdom, too, is linked to virtue of character,
and this to practical wisdom, since the principles of practical wisdom are in
accordance with the moral virtues and rightness in morals is in accordance with
practical wisdom. Being connected with the passions also, the moral virtues
must belong to our composite nature; and the virtues of our composite nature
are human; so, therefore, are the life and the happiness which correspond to
these. The excellence of the reason is a thing apart; we must be content to say
this much about it, for to describe it precisely is a task greater than our
purpose requires. It would seem, however, also to need external equipment but
little, or less than moral virtue does. Grant that both need the necessaries,
and do so equally, even if the statesman's work is the more concerned with the
body and things of that sort; for there will be little difference there; but in
what they need for the exercise of their activities there will be much
difference. The liberal man will need money for the doing of his liberal deeds,
and the just man too will need it for the returning of services (for wishes are
hard to discern, and even people who are not just pretend to wish to act
justly); and the brave man will need power if he is to accomplish any of the
acts that correspond to his virtue, and the temperate man will need
opportunity; for how else is either he or any of the others to be recognized?
It is debated, too, whether the will or the deed is more essential to virtue,
which is assumed to involve both; it is surely clear that its perfection
involves both; but for deeds many things are needed, and more, the greater and
nobler the deeds are. But the man who is contemplating the truth needs no such
thing, at least with a view to the exercise of his activity; indeed they are,
one may say, even hindrances, at all events to his contemplation; but in so far
as he is a man and lives with a number of people, he chooses to do virtuous
acts; he will therefore need such aids to living a human life. But that perfect happiness is a
contemplative activity will appear from the following consideration as well. We
assume the gods to be above all other beings blessed and happy; but what sort
of actions must we assign to them? Acts of justice? Will not the gods seem
absurd if they make contracts and return deposits, and so on? Acts of a brave
man, then, confronting dangers and running risks because it is noble to do so?
Or liberal acts? To whom will they give? It will be strange if they are really
to have money or anything of the kind. And what would their temperate acts be?
Is not such praise tasteless, since they have no bad appetites? If we were to
run through them all, the circumstances of action would be found trivial and
unworthy of gods. Still, every one supposes that they live and therefore that
they are active; we cannot suppose them to sleep like Endymion. Now if you take
away from a living being action, and still more production, what is left but
contemplation? Therefore the activity of God, which surpasses all others in
blessedness, must be contemplative; and of human activities, therefore, that
which is most akin to this must be most of the nature of happiness. This is indicated, too, by the fact that the
other animals have no share in happiness, being completely deprived of such
activity. For while the whole life of the gods is blessed, and that of men too
in so far as some likeness of such activity belongs to them, none of the other
animals is happy, since they in no way share in contemplation. Happiness
extends, then, just so far as contemplation does, and those to whom
contemplation more fully belongs are more truly happy, not as a mere
concomitant but in virtue of the contemplation; for this is in itself precious.
Happiness, therefore, must be some form of contemplation. But, being a man, one will also need
external prosperity; for our nature is not self-sufficient for the purpose of
contemplation, but our body also must be healthy and must have food and other
attention. Still, we must not think that the man who is to be happy will need
many things or great things, merely because he cannot be supremely happy without
external goods; for self-sufficiency and action do not involve excess, and we
can do noble acts without ruling earth and sea; for even with moderate
advantages one can act virtuously (this is manifest enough; for private persons
are thought to do worthy acts no less than despots-indeed even more); and it is
enough that we should have so much as that; for the life of the man who is
active in accordance with virtue will be happy. Solon, too, was perhaps
sketching well the happy man when he described him as moderately furnished with
externals but as having done (as Solon thought) the noblest acts, and lived
temperately; for one can with but moderate possessions do what one ought.
Anaxagoras also seems to have supposed the happy man not to be rich nor a despot,
when he said that he would not be surprised if the happy man were to seem to
most people a strange person; for they judge by externals, since these are all
they perceive. The opinions of the wise seem, then, to harmonize with our
arguments. But while even such things carry some conviction, the truth in
practical matters is discerned from the facts of life; for these are the
decisive factor. We must therefore survey what we have already said, bringing
it to the test of the facts of life, and if it harmonizes with the facts we
must accept it, but if it clashes with them we must suppose it to be mere
theory. Now he who exercises his reason and cultivates it seems to be both in
the best state of mind and most dear to the gods. For if the gods have any care
for human affairs, as they are thought to have, it would be reasonable both
that they should delight in that which was best and most akin to them (i.e.
reason) and that they should reward those who love and honour this most, as
caring for the things that are dear to them and acting both rightly and nobly.
And that all these attributes belong most of all to the philosopher is
manifest. He, therefore, is the dearest to the gods. And he who is that will
presumably be also the happiest; so that in this way too the philosopher will
more than any other be happy.
9
If these matters and the virtues, and also
friendship and pleasure, have been dealt with sufficiently in outline, are we
to suppose that our programme has reached its end? Surely, as the saying goes, where
there are things to be done the end is not to survey and recognize the various
things, but rather to do them; with regard to virtue, then, it is not enough to
know, but we must try to have and use it, or try any other way there may be of
becoming good. Now if arguments were in themselves enough to make men good,
they would justly, as Theognis says, have won very great rewards, and such
rewards should have been provided; but as things are, while they seem to have
power to encourage and stimulate the generous-minded among our youth, and to
make a character which is gently born, and a true lover of what is noble, ready
to be possessed by virtue, they are not able to encourage the many to nobility
and goodness. For these do not by nature obey the sense of shame, but only
fear, and do not abstain from bad acts because of their baseness but through
fear of punishment; living by passion they pursue their own pleasures and the
means to them, and and the opposite pains, and have not even a conception of
what is noble and truly pleasant, since they have never tasted it. What
argument would remould such people? It is hard, if not impossible, to remove by
argument the traits that have long since been incorporated in the character;
and perhaps we must be content if, when all the influences by which we are
thought to become good are present, we get some tincture of virtue. Now some think that we are made good by
nature, others by habituation, others by teaching. Nature's part evidently does
not depend on us, but as a result of some divine causes is present in those who
are truly fortunate; while argument and teaching, we may suspect, are not
powerful with all men, but the soul of the student must first have been
cultivated by means of habits for noble joy and noble hatred, like earth which
is to nourish the seed. For he who lives as passion directs will not hear
argument that dissuades him, nor understand it if he does; and how can we
persuade one in such a state to change his ways? And in general passion seems
to yield not to argument but to force. The character, then, must somehow be
there already with a kinship to virtue, loving what is noble and hating what is
base. But it is difficult to get from
youth up a right training for virtue if one has not been brought up under right
laws; for to live temperately and hardily is not pleasant to most people,
especially when they are young. For this reason their nurture and occupations
should be fixed by law; for they will not be painful when they have become
customary. But it is surely not enough that when they are young they should get
the right nurture and attention; since they must, even when they are grown up,
practise and be habituated to them, we shall need laws for this as well, and
generally speaking to cover the whole of life; for most people obey necessity
rather than argument, and punishments rather than the sense of what is
noble. This is why some think that
legislators ought to stimulate men to virtue and urge them forward by the
motive of the noble, on the assumption that those who have been well advanced
by the formation of habits will attend to such influences; and that punishments
and penalties should be imposed on those who disobey and are of inferior
nature, while the incurably bad should be completely banished. A good man (they
think), since he lives with his mind fixed on what is noble, will submit to
argument, while a bad man, whose desire is for pleasure, is corrected by pain
like a beast of burden. This is, too, why they say the pains inflicted should
be those that are most opposed to the pleasures such men love. However that may be, if (as we have said)
the man who is to be good must be well trained and habituated, and go on to
spend his time in worthy occupations and neither willingly nor unwillingly do bad
actions, and if this can be brought about if men live in accordance with a sort
of reason and right order, provided this has force,-if this be so, the paternal
command indeed has not the required force or compulsive power (nor in general
has the command of one man, unless he be a king or something similar), but the
law has compulsive power, while it is at the same time a rule proceeding from a
sort of practical wisdom and reason. And while people hate men who oppose their
impulses, even if they oppose them rightly, the law in its ordaining of what is
good is not burdensome. In the Spartan
state alone, or almost alone, the legislator seems to have paid attention to
questions of nurture and occupations; in most states such matters have been
neglected, and each man lives as he pleases, Cyclops-fashion, 'to his own wife
and children dealing law'. Now it is best that there should be a public and
proper care for such matters; but if they are neglected by the community it
would seem right for each man to help his children and friends towards virtue,
and that they should have the power, or at least the will, to do this. It would seem from what has been said that
he can do this better if he makes himself capable of legislating. For public
control is plainly effected by laws, and good control by good laws; whether
written or unwritten would seem to make no difference, nor whether they are
laws providing for the education of individuals or of groups-any more than it
does in the case of music or gymnastics and other such pursuits. For as in
cities laws and prevailing types of character have force, so in households do
the injunctions and the habits of the father, and these have even more because
of the tie of blood and the benefits he confers; for the children start with a
natural affection and disposition to obey. Further, private education has an
advantage over public, as private medical treatment has; for while in general
rest and abstinence from food are good for a man in a fever, for a particular
man they may not be; and a boxer presumably does not prescribe the same style
of fighting to all his pupils. It would seem, then, that the detail is worked
out with more precision if the control is private; for each person is more
likely to get what suits his case. But
the details can be best looked after, one by one, by a doctor or gymnastic
instructor or any one else who has the general knowledge of what is good for
every one or for people of a certain kind (for the sciences both are said to
be, and are, concerned with what is universal); not but what some particular
detail may perhaps be well looked after by an unscientific person, if he has
studied accurately in the light of experience what happens in each case, just
as some people seem to be their own best doctors, though they could give no
help to any one else. None the less, it will perhaps be agreed that if a man
does wish to become master of an art or science he must go to the universal,
and come to know it as well as possible; for, as we have said, it is with this
that the sciences are concerned. And
surely he who wants to make men, whether many or few, better by his care must
try to become capable of legislating, if it is through laws that we can become
good. For to get any one whatever-any one who is put before us-into the right
condition is not for the first chance comer; if any one can do it, it is the
man who knows, just as in medicine and all other matters which give scope for
care and prudence. Must we not, then,
next examine whence or how one can learn how to legislate? Is it, as in all
other cases, from statesmen? Certainly it was thought to be a part of
statesmanship. Or is a difference apparent between statesmanship and the other
sciences and arts? In the others the same people are found offering to teach the
arts and practising them, e.g. doctors or painters; but while the sophists
profess to teach politics, it is practised not by any of them but by the
politicians, who would seem to do so by dint of a certain skill and experience
rather than of thought; for they are not found either writing or speaking about
such matters (though it were a nobler occupation perhaps than composing
speeches for the law-courts and the assembly), nor again are they found to have
made statesmen of their own sons or any other of their friends. But it was to
be expected that they should if they could; for there is nothing better than
such a skill that they could have left to their cities, or could prefer to have
for themselves, or, therefore, for those dearest to them. Still, experience
seems to contribute not a little; else they could not have become politicians
by familiarity with politics; and so it seems that those who aim at knowing
about the art of politics need experience as well. But those of the sophists who profess the art seem to be very far
from teaching it. For, to put the matter generally, they do not even know what
kind of thing it is nor what kinds of things it is about; otherwise they would
not have classed it as identical with rhetoric or even inferior to it, nor have
thought it easy to legislate by collecting the laws that are thought well of;
they say it is possible to select the best laws, as though even the selection
did not demand intelligence and as though right judgement were not the greatest
thing, as in matters of music. For while people experienced in any department
judge rightly the works produced in it, and understand by what means or how
they are achieved, and what harmonizes with what, the inexperienced must be
content if they do not fail to see whether the work has been well or ill
made-as in the case of painting. Now laws are as it were the' works' of the
political art; how then can one learn from them to be a legislator, or judge
which are best? Even medical men do not seem to be made by a study of text-books.
Yet people try, at any rate, to state not only the treatments, but also how
particular classes of people can be cured and should be treated-distinguishing
the various habits of body; but while this seems useful to experienced people,
to the inexperienced it is valueless. Surely, then, while collections of laws,
and of constitutions also, may be serviceable to those who can study them and
judge what is good or bad and what enactments suit what circumstances, those
who go through such collections without a practised faculty will not have right
judgement (unless it be as a spontaneous gift of nature), though they may
perhaps become more intelligent in such matters. Now our predecessors have left the subject of legislation to us
unexamined; it is perhaps best, therefore, that we should ourselves study it,
and in general study the question of the constitution, in order to complete to
the best of our ability our philosophy of human nature. First, then, if
anything has been said well in detail by earlier thinkers, let us try to review
it; then in the light of the constitutions we have collected let us study what
sorts of influence preserve and destroy states, and what sorts preserve or
destroy the particular kinds of constitution, and to what causes it is due that
some are well and others ill administered. When these have been studied we
shall perhaps be more likely to see with a comprehensive view, which
constitution is best, and how each must be ordered, and what laws and customs
it must use, if it is to be at its best. Let us make a beginning of our
discussion.